Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n body_n law_n sin_n 9,645 5 5.2654 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A37035 A commentarie upon the book of the Revelation Wherein the text is explained, the series of the several prophecies contained in that book, deduced according to their order and dependance on each other; the periods and succession of times, at, or about which, these prophecies, that are already fulfilled, began to be, and were more fully accomplished, fixed and applied according to history; and those that are yet to be fulfilled, modestly, and so far as is warrantable, enquired into. Together with some practical observations, and several digressions, necessary for vindicating, clearing, and confirming many weighty and important truths. Delivered in several lectures, by that learned, laborious, and faithfull servant of Jesus Christ, James Durham, late Minister of the Gospel in Glasgow. To which is affixed a brief summary of the whole book, with a twofold index, one of the several digressions, another of the chief and principall purposes and words contained in this treatise. Durham, James, 1622-1658. 1658 (1658) Wing D2805; ESTC R216058 1,353,392 814

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

jesus_n so_o as_o to_o be_v in_o love_n with_o the_o same_o this_o be_v proper_o turn_v and_o do_v comprehend_v the_o essential_o of_o repentance_n what_o ever_o the_o degree_n of_o sorrow_n be_v these_o advertisement_n be_v lay_v down_o we_o will_v now_o consider_v some_o distinction_n of_o that_o repentance_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o pardon_n especial_o in_o the_o regenerate_v as_o they_o be_v or_o may_v be_v hold_v forth_o in_o several_a expression_n by_o several_a person_n distinct._n 1._o repentance_n be_v either_o express_a and_o explicit_a that_o be_v when_o man_n both_o know_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v sin_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o they_o and_o do_v express_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o and_o be_v affect_v with_o they_o or_o it_o be_v implicit_a when_o man_n be_v general_o affect_v for_o sin_n although_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o thing_n which_o they_o do_v not_o know_v to_o be_v sin_n or_o know_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o of_o such_o sort_n may_v be_v the_o polygamy_n of_o several_a godly_a man_n which_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v justify_v at_o least_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o extent_n thereof_o in_o all_o as_o to_o be_v so_o ordinary_a to_o have_v so_o many_o wife_n to_o have_v they_o of_o such_o consanguinity_n as_o sister_n etc._n etc._n of_o such_o sort_n may_v be_v the_o error_n which_o be_v maintain_v by_o many_o of_o the_o godly_a in_o the_o primitive_a time_n concern_v meat_n day_n etc._n etc._n which_o not_o be_v know_v by_o they_o to_o be_v sin_n can_v be_v say_v explicit_o to_o have_v be_v repent_v of_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v impenitent_a it_o can_v be_v say_v under_o this_o also_o comein_a many_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v forget_v not_o observe_v or_o consider_v as_o appear_v from_o psal._n 19_o lord_n purge_v i_o from_o secret_a sin_n the_o last_o be_v to_o be_v account_v necessary_a to_o pardon_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v penitent_a but_o the_o first_o to_o wit_n that_o repentance_n shall_v be_v explicit_a with_o respect_n to_o every_o particular_a sin_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v necessary_a in_o this_o absolute_a sense_n distict_v 2._o repentance_n be_v either_o actual_a and_o that_o for_o particular_a sin_n as_o when_o peter_n repent_v of_o his_o denial_n and_o david_n of_o his_o murder_n etc._n etc._n or_o it_o be_v interpretative_a and_o virtual_a as_o when_o a_o man_n be_v hearty_o affect_v for_o such_o and_o such_o a_o particular_a sin_n and_o for_o the_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o body_n of_o death_n that_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o all_o although_o there_o be_v some_o particular_a sin_n which_o be_v either_o not_o know_v to_o he_o to_o be_v such_o or_o be_v not_o actual_o in_o his_o mind_n and_o so_o can_v be_v particular_o and_o actual_o repent_v of_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o virtual_o he_o do_v repent_v of_o the_o same_o because_o 1._o he_o do_v repent_v of_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o root_n and_o seed_n thereof_o and_o he_o may_v well_o be_v construct_v to_o repent_v of_o and_o to_o loathe_v all_o the_o branch_n and_o member_n when_o he_o be_v serious_o humble_v under_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o indwelling_a root_n and_o body_n of_o death_n 2._o because_o he_o repent_v of_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v know_v to_o he_o upon_o the_o account_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o sin_n as_o sin_n to_o wit_n its_o dis-conformity_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o may_v well_o be_v construct_v to_o repent_v virtual_o of_o all_o the_o sin_n he_o be_v guilty_a of_o because_o that_o which_o be_v the_o essence_n and_o form_n to_o speak_v so_o of_o every_o sin_n be_v detest_v by_o he_o as_o it_o be_v such_o and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v â_fw-la quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la this_o last_o be_v only_o plead_v for_o as_o simple_o necessary_a as_o the_o former_a instance_n do_v clear_a dist._n 3._o repentance_n may_v either_o be_v consider_v intensive_o that_o be_v as_o it_o do_v affect_v the_o heart_n with_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o sorrow_n or_o it_o may_v be_v consider_v appretiative_o that_o be_v when_o sin_n be_v see_v and_o acknowledge_v and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o such_o intense_a sorrow_n or_o so_o sensible_o affect_v the_o heart_n yet_o sin_n be_v account_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v sorrowed-for_a and_o the_o heart_n be_v weight_v that_o its_o sorrow_n be_v not_o deep_o and_o the_o person_n reckon_v itself_o so_o far_o under_o the_o body_n of_o death_n as_o it_o can_v be_v answerable_a to_o its_o light_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o repentance_n this_o last_o may_v have_v the_o native_a effect_n of_o repentance_n to_o wit_n the_o humble_v of_o the_o sinner_n etc._n etc._n without_o the_o former_a therefore_o at_o least_o the_o former_a be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a mark_v here_o that_o the_o use_n of_o this_o distinction_n be_v exceed_o different_a from_o the_o use_n which_o papist_n make_v thereof_o to_o wit_n for_o support_v of_o a_o ruinous_a inherent_a righteousness_n whereof_o repentance_n be_v a_o part_n and_o because_o they_o can_v find_v it_o in_o that_o intensnesse_n as_o may_v stand_v before_o justice_n therefore_o they_o coin_v a_o sort_n of_o appretiative_a repentance_n which_o to_o they_o be_v a_o desire_n and_o endeavour_v in_o the_o uttermost_a degree_n possible_a to_o attain_v the_o former_a that_o so_o they_o may_v underprop_v the_o other_o that_o be_v like_o toruine_n or_o put_v this_o in_o its_o room_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n here_o for_o as_o we_o understand_v the_o appretiative_a repentance_n it_o be_v to_o commend_v grace_n and_o humble_v we_o the_o more_o but_o as_o they_o do_v it_o be_v to_o support_v work_n and_o can_v never_o give_v a_o conscience_n quietness_n because_o it_o be_v still_o defective_a even_o in_o what_o it_o may_v attain_v whereof_o we_o possible_o shall_v say_v somewhat_o elsewhere_o dist._n 4._o repentance_n may_v be_v consider_v as_o prevalent_a and_o take_v up_o the_o whole_a man_n and_o thus_o it_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o sutablnesse_n in_o a_o man_n affection_n and_o action_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o david_n psal._n 51._o or_o it_o may_v be_v consider_v as_o in_o the_o renew_a part_n which_o may_v be_v lament_a sin_n and_o its_o own_o condition_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o body_n of_o death_n even_o while_o it_o be_v keep_v in_o bondage_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o in_o this_o respect_n paul_n be_v exercise_v repentance_n rom._n 7._o when_o he_o allow_v not_o that_o which_o he_o do_v and_o be_v prevail_v over_o by_o the_o law_n of_o his_o member_n and_o no_o question_n he_o be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o penitent_a upon_o that_o account_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o first_o of_o these_o but_o the_o last_o be_v to_o be_v account_v simple_o necessary_a this_o also_o may_v be_v see_v in_o ephraim_n bemoan_v himself_n jer._n 31.18_o dist._n 5._o we_o may_v also_o consider_v repentance_n as_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o before_o man_n or_o to_o the_o person_n himself_o by_o a_o palpable_a recovery_n such_o be_v the_o repentance_n of_o david_n peter_n etc._n etc._n or_o we_o may_v consider_v it_o as_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o to_o god_n only_o without_o such_o sensible_a evidence_n to_o other_o or_o it_o may_v be_v any_o sensible_a change_n to_o the_o person_n itself_o yet_o may_v there_o be_v real_a repentance_n indeed_o before_o god_n this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o solomon_n of_o who_o repentance_n and_o pardon_n we_o can_v doubt_v as_o also_o of_o asa_n yet_o have_v the_o lord_n leave_v they_o in_o his_o word_n under_o such_o a_o cloud_n that_o their_o change_n have_v not_o be_v at_o least_o very_o discernible_a for_o we_o find_v these_o high_a place_n that_o be_v build_v by_o solomon_n continue_v unremoved_a for_o many_o gene●●tions_n thereafter_o which_o do_v certain_o show_v that_o his_o repentance_n have_v not_o have_v so_o palpable_a a_o change_n before_o man_n as_o that_o of_o manasses_n have_v and_o this_o be_v order_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o deep_a wisdom_n partly_o for_o a_o chastisement_n of_o their_o backslide_n partly_o to_o terrify_v other_o from_o the_o way_n of_o decline_a and_o partly_o to_o make_v all_o man_n sober_a and_o spare_v to_o pass_v sentence_n upon_o the_o state_n of_o other_o however_o their_o condition_n may_v look_v before_o man_n when_o they_o be_v remove_v for_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o sovereign_a and_o infallible_a decision_n of_o their_o state_n to_o wit_n whether_o they_o be_v penitent_n and_o believer_n or_o not_o leave_v unto_o himself_o alone_o who_o have_v a_o insensible_a way_n of_o beget_v faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o also_o of_o recover_v and_o renew_v the_o same_o
of_o all_o nation_n kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o we_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o abraham_n but_o be_v of_o strange_a nation_n have_v reason_n to_o praise_v for_o this_o gospel_n and_o to_o bless_v the_o mediator_n who_o have_v purchase_v it_o unto_o we_o again_o although_o this_o object_n in_o some_o respect_n have_v be_v extend_v to_o all_o nation_n kindred_n &c._n &c._n without_o distinction_n or_o discrimination_n yet_o somewhat_o be_v add_v to_o qualify_v and_o restrict_n the_o same_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v understand_v collective_o of_o all_o of_o every_o nation_n language_n etc._n etc._n but_o distributive_o of_o some_o of_o these_o nation_n kindred_n and_o tongue_n for_o the_o redeemed_z their_o song_n be_v express_v in_o these_o term_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o every_o tongue_n and_o kindred_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n and_o certain_o there_o be_v a_o palpable_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o to_o wit_n to_o say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v all_o kindred_n tongue_n and_o nation_n and_o to_o say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o every_o tongue_n kindred_n and_o nation_n whereby_o the_o redeem_v be_v contradistinguish_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o kindred_n tongue_n and_o nation_n out_o of_o which_o they_o be_v redeem_v and_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v think_v but_o that_o all_o who_o be_v redeem_v do_v concur_v in_o this_o song_n therefore_o the_o other_o contradistinguish_v from_o they_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v beside_o this_o peculiarnesse_n of_o redemption_n be_v a_o special_a ground_n of_o the_o redeem_v praise_n to_o wit_n when_o they_o be_v lie_v under_o the_o curse_n with_o other_o christ_n have_v redeem_v they_o from_o among_o they_o further_o all_o this_o song_n do_v agree_v to_o any_o person_n that_o have_v be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n blood_n they_o that_o be_v redeem_v be_v also_o make_v king_n and_o priest_n and_o see_v all_o can_v praise_v for_o this_o mercy_n as_o experience_n show_v therefore_o can_v it_o not_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o former_a and_o if_o we_o will_v remember_v what_o be_v just_a now_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o redemption_n do_v import_v a_o peculiar_a right_n to_o these_o that_o be_v redeem_v beside_o other_o to_o wit_n a_o right_a by_o election_n then_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o no_o other_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v but_o the_o elect_n that_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n and_o see_v all_o man_n be_v not_o god_n by_o this_o peculiar_a right_n for_o to_o be_v god_n in_o this_o respect_n and_o to_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n and_o so_o to_o be_v actual_o redeem_v be_v of_o equal_a extent_n therefore_o can_v it_o not_o be_v say_v that_o all_o be_v redeem_v the_o three_o reason_n or_o ground_n of_o their_o praise_n which_o be_v also_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o former_a will_v confirm_v this_o and_o it_o be_v contain_v vers_fw-la 10._o and_o have_v make_v we_o unto_o our_o god_n king_n and_o priest_n and_o we_o shall_v reign_v upon_o earth_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o be_v the_o advantage_n which_o they_o reap_v by_o christ_n redemption_n which_o make_v they_o thus_o to_o praise_v they_o answer_v they_o be_v very_o great_a for_o not_o only_o be_v they_o free_v from_o the_o former_a bondage_n they_o be_v under_o and_o set_v at_o liberty_n as_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n but_o they_o be_v honour_v and_o bless_v with_o many_o excellent_a privilege_n exceed_o commend_v in_o four_o word_n 1._o thou_o have_v make_v we_o king_n this_o respect_v that_o spiritual_a freedom_n that_o the_o believer_n have_v from_o their_o former_a enemy_n and_o that_o spiritual_a dominion_n which_o they_o have_v over_o they_o and_o that_o eternal_a glory_n whereof_o they_o shall_v be_v partaker_n when_o they_o shall_v sit_v upon_o one_o throne_n with_o the_o lord_n christ._n this_o be_v a_o great_a privilege_n that_o all_o the_o redeem_v who_o be_v former_o slave_n shall_v be_v make_v king_n 2._o they_o be_v make_v priest_n this_o be_v also_o a_o title_n and_o office_n of_o great_a dignity_n under_o the_o law_n and_o by_o it_o be_v signify_v that_o by_o christ_n jesus_n all_o the_o redeem_v be_v honour_v to_o have_v access_n unto_o god_n with_o boldness_n and_o to_o offer_v up_o their_o own_o prayer_n and_o praise_n unto_o god_n by_o he_o with_o hope_n of_o be_v accept_v which_o privilege_n be_v found_v upon_o christ_n redemption_n and_o without_o this_o there_o have_v be_v access_n to_o no_o sinner_n to_o pray_v or_o praise_v acceptable_o and_o with_o any_o comfort_n before_o god_n but_o now_o say_v they_o we_o be_v priest_n and_o may_v offer_v our_o own_o sacrifice_n yea_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n we_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o any_o typical_a service_n nor_o to_o one_o place_n or_o temple_n nor_o to_o seek_v a_o priest_n to_o offer_v our_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n for_o we_o but_o we_o ourselves_o may_v approach_v therewith_o unto_o he_o 3._o it_o commend_v and_o sweeten_v this_o privilege_n that_o they_o be_v make_v priest_n to_o our_o god_n which_o imply_v that_o now_o by_o christ_n purchase_n they_o may_v worship_v and_o serve_v god_n as_o in_o covenant_n with_o they_o and_o as_o their_o own_o god_n which_o do_v make_v all_o the_o service_n they_o can_v be_v put_v to_o very_o light_a and_o easy_a and_o strengthen_v they_o against_o all_o the_o difficulty_n they_o may_v meet_v with_o therein_o see_v it_o be_v no_o idol_n nor_o strange_a god_n who_o they_o worship_v but_o their_o own_o god_n who_o will_v pity_v they_o in_o their_o service_n as_o a_o father_n pity_v his_o son_n last_o they_o say_v and_o we_o shall_v reign_v upon_o earth_n which_o be_v set_v down_o not_o only_o to_o show_v the_o spiritualnesse_n of_o this_o kingdom_n which_o be_v on_o earth_n and_o common_a to_o all_o the_o redeem_v many_o of_o who_o have_v a_o poor_a be_v here_o can_v be_v no_o other_o way_n understand_v than_o of_o his_o spiritual_a dominion_n but_o main_o we_o conceive_v it_o be_v mention_v here_o as_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o song_n that_o not_o only_o have_v they_o a_o hope_n of_o reign_v and_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n in_o heaven_n but_o that_o in_o some_o measure_n they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n purchase_n in_o the_o subdue_a of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o mortify_n of_o their_o lust_n whereby_o they_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v not_o now_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n rom._n 6.14_o and_o this_o be_v a_o kindly_a evidence_n of_o a_o redeem_a person_n and_o a_o convince_a ground_n of_o praise_n to_o a_o true_o gracious_a soul_n to_o wit_n to_o have_v sanctification_n thrive_a the_o body_n of_o death_n bear_v down_o and_o even_o before_o they_o come_v to_o heaven_n to_o be_v look_v heaven-like_a and_o to_o be_v bring_v someway_o to_o triumph_v over_o their_o spiritual_a enemy_n than_o which_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o will_v be_v more_o desire_v by_o they_o so_o there_o will_v be_v nothing_o more_o acceptable_a to_o they_o even_o thus_o to_o be_v privilege_v and_o dignify_v to_o reign_v spiritual_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o we_o may_v see_v that_o as_o this_o be_v a_o great_a mercy_n to_o be_v sanctify_v so_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o flow_v from_o his_o purchase_n even_o as_o justification_n do_v in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v our_o sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o our_o righteousness_n 1_o cor._n 1.31_o the_o second_o company_n who_o join_v in_o this_o song_n be_v the_o angel_n who_o be_v describe_v vers_fw-la 11._o and_o then_o their_o song_n be_v express_v vers_fw-la 12._o they_o be_v describe_v first_o by_o their_o title_n and_o number_n they_o be_v angel_n that_o be_v glorious_a minister_a spirit_n heb._n 1.14_o call_v sometime_o in_o scripture_n the_o host_n of_o heaven_n and_o because_o of_o their_o excellency_n the_o son_n of_o god_n job_n 38.7_o and_o they_o be_v many_o angel_n the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o and_o thousand_o of_o thousand_o this_o be_v a_o great_a number_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o dan._n 7.10_o where_o thousand_o thousand_o be_v say_v to_o minister_n unto_o he_o and_o ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o to_o stand_v before_o he_o yet_o the_o expression_n be_v but_o put_v for_o a_o indefinite_a to_o show_v the_o innumerable_a company_n of_o glorious_a and_o mighty_a angel_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v wait_v on_o he_o as_o servant_n and_o minister_n to_o do_v his_o pleasure_n in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o be_v psal._n 103.21_o the_o scope_n be_v to_o show_v how_o glorious_a he_o must_v be_v who_o be_v thus_o wait_v upon_o second_o the_o
these_o privilege_n it_o enjoy_v hence_o observe_v 1._o god_n people_n in_o difficult_a time_n will_v be_v acquaint_v themselves_o with_o and_o confirm_v themselves_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o happy_a estate_n of_o glory_n for_o this_o end_n it_o be_v so_o studious_o propose_v much_o pain_n be_v take_v to_o reveal_v and_o hold_v it_o forth_o and_o the_o lord_n stir_v up_o john_n and_o in_o he_o other_o believer_n to_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o to_o believe_v and_o comfort_v themselves_o from_o the_o happy_a estate_n they_o shall_v meet_v with_o when_o their_o suffering_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n 1._o to_o prevent_v their_o faint_a in_o as_o far_o as_o heaven_n make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o their_o difficulty_n 2._o to_o make_v they_o submissive_a because_o that_o time_n be_v come_v 3._o to_o make_v their_o life_n lively_a and_o comfortable_a by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n of_o it_o and_o the_o frequent_a meditation_n on_o it_o this_o make_v a_o cheerful_a comfortable_a and_o submissive_a way_n of_o live_v under_o cross_n and_o difficulty_n this_o make_v believer_n long_o for_o heaven_n and_o to_o comfort_v themselves_o in_o their_o abide_n empty_a hand_v for_o the_o time_n 2._o these_o be_v they_o that_o come_v out_o of_o great_a tribulation_n then_o tribulation_n and_o great_a tribulation_n be_v the_o way_n to_o glory_n to_o they_o who_o god_n love_v most_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o drink_v of_o the_o brook_n by_o the_o way_n psal._n 110.7_o and_o be_v make_v low_a before_o he_o be_v exalt_v and_o his_o member_n follow_v the_o head_n in_o a_o conformity_n of_o suffering_n rom._n 8.28_o act_n 14.22_o suffer_v can_v not_o look_v so_o grim_a and_o terrible-like_a if_o what_o be_v on_o the_o back_n of_o it_o be_v well_o look_v to_o let_v none_o think_v the_o worse_a of_o glory_n or_o that_o the_o happiness_n of_o god_n people_n be_v of_o less_o worth_n because_o tribulation_n be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o it_o neither_o let_v any_o prize_n a_o easy_a life_n in_o this_o world_n with_o god_n curse_n this_o be_v far_o better_a with_o all_o the_o tribulation_n that_o accompany_v it_o 3._o they_o have_v washen_v their_o garment_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n who_o come_v through_o tribulation_n observe_v these_o that_o be_v most_o righteous_a whether_o in_o active_a obedience_n in_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o commandment_n or_o in_o passive_a obedience_n in_o yield_v their_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v they_o have_v need_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n to_o make_v they_o white_a these_o worthy_n keep_v themselves_o free_a of_o the_o pollution_n of_o the_o time_n and_o shun_v no_o suffering_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o account_n they_o appear_v not_o before_o god_n holiness_n be_v good_a but_o in_o our_o seek_v to_o appear_v before_o god_n we_o be_v to_o seek_v to_o be_v find_v in_o christ_n phil_n 3.9_o or_o take_v the_o doctrine_n thus_o no_o merit_n of_o we_o can_v bring_v through_o neither_o temporal_a nor_o spiritual_a judgement_n these_o be_v free_a of_o common_a guiltiness_n and_o shun_v not_o but_o endure_v all_o tribulation_n yet_o none_o of_o these_o be_v ground_n of_o their_o through-bearing_a but_o the_o wash_n of_o their_o garment_n in_o christ_n blood_n 4._o as_o the_o great_a tribulation_n have_v a_o outgate_n and_o the_o great_a the_o tribulation_n be_v the_o great_a and_o more_o glorious_a be_v the_o outgate_n and_o the_o great_a the_o fight_n be_v the_o victory_n be_v the_o more_o remarkable_a therefore_o be_v all_o these_o singulary_o point_v at_o here_o so_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o best_a and_o only_o outgate_v from_o tribulation_n flee_v to_o christ_n for_o refuge_n be_v the_o only_o best_a way_n to_o escape_v all_o tribulation_n temporal_a or_o spiritual_a for_o we_o suppose_v this_o come_n out_o of_o tribulation_n look_v to_o temporal_a affliction_n as_o well_o as_o delivery_n from_o eternal_a wrath_n and_o indeed_o if_o the_o misknow_v of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o a_o people_n that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n be_v the_o great_a cause_n of_o their_o temporal_a ruin_n trouble_n and_o overthrow_n luke_n 19.42_o 43._o o_o that_o thou_o have_v know_v in_o this_o thy_o day_n the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o thy_o peace_n but_o now_o they_o be_v hide_v from_o thy_o eye_n therefore_o the_o day_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o that_o thy_o enemy_n shall_v cast_v a_o trench_n about_o thou_o if_o the_o neglect_v of_o he_o hasten_v judgement_n on_o the_o ungodly_a world_n then_o flee_v to_o he_o must_v be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o shun_v judgement_n to_o take_v away_o the_o controversy_n and_o to_o get_v a_o outgate_n from_o tribulation_n when_o they_o be_v lie_v on_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o we_o will_v more_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o this_o time_n there_o be_v none_o but_o they_o will_v know_v how_o to_o be_v rid_v of_o the_o trial_n and_o trouble_n that_o be_v lie_v on_o this_o be_v the_o best_a way_n that_o can_v be_v take_v jesus_n christ_n take_v away_o the_o controversy_n and_o make_v the_o sufferer_n white_a we_o be_v conqueror_n yea_o more_o than_o conqueror_n through_o christ_n who_o love_v we_o rom._n 8.35_o 1._o he_o strengthen_v to_o stand_v and_o fight_v 2._o he_o hide_v sin_n and_o remove_v guilt_n which_o be_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o controversy_n 3._o he_o give_v peace_n and_o a_o settle_a outgate_n and_o outgate_n from_o tribulation_n any_o otherway_v whether_o by_o outward_a mean_n as_o army_n friendship_n etc._n etc._n or_o inward_a as_o in_o our_o own_o holiness_n or_o satisfaction_n be_v but_o the_o pass_n from_o one_o snare_n to_o another_o that_o be_v worse_a and_o from_o one_o plague_n to_o a_o great_a curse_n and_o folk_n can_v never_o be_v say_v to_o come_v out_o of_o tribulation_n while_o they_o lie_v under_o the_o wrath_n and_o curse_n of_o god_n micah_n 5.4_o only_o this_o man_n shall_v be_v the_o peace_n when_o the_o assyrian_a shall_v come_v into_o our_o land_n 5._o from_o the_o happy_a condition_n of_o christ_n follower_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a and_o unspeakable_a happiness_n a_o excellent_a condition_n delightsome_a and_o lovely_a that_o believer_n be_v to_o look_v for_o in_o heaven_n when_o the_o tribulation_n shall_v be_v over_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o outgate_n but_o a_o excellent_a outgate_n we_o can_v speak_v of_o it_o to_o you_o only_o beside_o what_o be_v say_v of_o it_o vers_n 9_o 10._o take_v a_o short_a view_n of_o what_o be_v say_v of_o it_o here_o 1._o for_o its_o place_n it_o be_v here_o before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n behold_v he_o to_o have_v a_o place_n among_o they_o that_o stand_v by_o in_o god_n temple_n this_o be_v the_o first_o step_n of_o their_o happiness_n 2._o their_o decore_n be_v white_z robes_z and_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n as_o so_o many_o conqueror_n and_o triumpher_n 3._o their_o company_n god_n and_o christ_n angel_n and_o saint_n mean_v by_o the_o elder_n 4._o their_o work_n be_v to_o sing_v and_o praise_v cheerful_o again_o here_o further_o it_o be_v set_v out_o in_o these_o property_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o sinless_a happiness_n no_o back-drawing_a from_o god_n will_v be_v there_o but_o a_o do_v of_o his_o will_n with_o delight_n and_o without_o interruption_n or_o weariness_n night_n and_o day_n that_o be_v continual_o for_o there_o be_v no_o night_n there_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o their_o glory_n and_o the_o first_o step_n of_o it_o to_o be_v quit_v of_o sin_n there_o they_o will_v not_o he_o put_v to_o pray_v let_v thy_o will_n be_v do_v on_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o there_o will_v be_v a_o actual_a do_v of_o it_o so_o 2._o that_o day_n be_v come_v when_o there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o cry_v out_o under_o a_o body_n of_o death_n the_o body_n of_o death_n will_v not_o then_o rebel_n there_o will_v not_o be_v one_o law_n against_o another_o not_o a_o inward_a man_n or_o mind_n and_o flesh_n but_o perfect_a holiness_n without_o a_o sinful_a defect_n no_o reluctancy_n no_o sin_n nor_o misery_n 3._o to_o do_v this_o in_o his_o temple_n be_v to_o signify_v their_o dignity_n and_o eminency_n and_o the_o dignity_n and_o eminency_n of_o their_o service_n they_o need_v no_o priest_n now_o to_o go_v in_o to_o the_o most_o holy_a all_o be_v there_o admit_v thus_o to_o minister_v 4._o the_o great_a object_n of_o their_o eternal_a blessedness_n be_v god_n they_o enjoy_v he_o full_o familiar_o and_o constant_o which_o be_v mean_v by_o his_o dwell_n with_o they_o they_o be_v ever_o in_o his_o company_n god_n and_o they_o in_o one_o house_n and_o upon_o one_o throne_n and_o to_o have_v common_a society_n with_o he_o it_o be_v wonderful_a and_o the_o height_n of_o all_o 5._o there_o be_v no_o sinless_a defect_n there_o nor_o any_o cross_a either_o of_o infirmity_n or_o
when_o he_o please_v if_o it_o be_v further_o move_v how_o at_o the_o first_o exercise_v of_o repentance_n and_o faith_n a_o man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v that_o be_v accept_v as_o righteous_a and_o pardon_v of_o all_o his_o sin_n see_v his_o sin_n after_o justification_n be_v not_o pardon_v until_o they_o be_v commit_v and_o repent_v of_o ans._n both_o be_v true_a for_o future_a sin_n be_v not_o actual_o pardon_v till_o they_o be_v commit_v and_o repent_v of_o yet_o be_v the_o man_n a_o justify_v person_n and_o in_o a_o justify_v state_n have_v a_o ground_n lay_v in_o his_o justification_n for_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o these_o sin_n that_o follow_v so_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o overturn_v his_o former_a absolution_n for_o god_n covenant_n have_v both_o full_o in_o it_o yet_o in_o due_a way_n to_o be_v apply_v and_o it_o be_v as_o if_o a_o company_n of_o rebel_n be_v subdue_v and_o by_o treaty_n they_o be_v pardon_v change_v from_o that_o state_n of_o enemy_n to_o be_v natural_a subject_n and_o privilege_v with_o their_o privilege_n so_o that_o if_o they_o fall_v in_o after_o fault_n as_o subject_n may_v fall_v in_o yet_o be_v they_o never_o again_o count_v enemy_n nor_o be_v their_o first_o freedom_n cancel_v but_o they_o be_v deal_v with_o as_o native_a subject_n fall_v into_o such_o offence_n and_o have_v privilege_n that_o stranger_n have_v not_o nor_o can_v plead_v in_o the_o same_o fault_n one_o of_o which_o privilege_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v rigid_o fall_v upon_o although_o their_o guilt_n deserve_v death_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v mean_n use_v to_o reclaim_v they_o and_o th●se_a such_o as_o can_v but_o be_v effectual_a and_o that_o upon_o recovery_n they_o shall_v be_v pardon_v these_o fault_n and_o be_v preserve_v from_o the_o deserve_a punishment_n it_o be_v so_o by_o the_o treaty_n of_o grace_n and_o justification_n the_o believe_a sinner_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o state_n of_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o friend_n this_o be_v unalterable_a he_o can_v afterward_o but_o be_v a_o friend_n yet_o because_o a_o friend_n may_v be_v ingrate_a and_o fail_v to_o his_o benefactor_n therefore_o by_o that_o treaty_n it_o be_v provide_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o way_n to_o forgiunesse_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o covenant_n yet_o so_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o new_a exercise_n of_o repentance_n and_o faith_n for_o the_o commend_v of_o the_o way_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o a_o sin_v believer_n be_v a_o sinner_n but_o not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n nor_o be_v a_o enemy_n as_o he_o be_v before_o justification_n even_o as_o a_o faulty_a subject_n be_v guilty_a yet_o be_v no_o enemy_n nor_o rebel_n nor_o can_v be_v punish_v by_o death_n when_o he_o become_v penitent_a although_o he_o deserve_v it_o because_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v such_o to_o the_o subject_n of_o that_o kingdom_n that_o their_o plead_n of_o their_o former_a treaty_n and_o betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o term_n thereof_o be_v ever_o to_o be_v accept_v as_o a_o righteousness_n for_o they_o in_o reference_n to_o any_o particular_a sin_n follow_v justification_n as_o well_o as_o what_o precede_v and_o this_o no_o stranger_n to_o god_n can_v plead_v who_o have_v no_o such_o ground_n for_o his_o recovery_n from_o sin_n or_o that_o god_n will_v give_v he_o repentance_n for_o it_o much_o less_o that_o he_o will_v certain_o pardon_v he_o yes_o it_o differ_v from_o a_o penitent_n case_n at_o first_o conversion_n because_o a_o covenanter_n may_v expect_v pardon_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o same_o covenant_n in_o which_o he_o be_v engage_v and_o to_o which_o he_o have_v already_o right_a and_o he_o have_v jus_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la another_o can_v do_v so_o but_o must_v consider_v the_o covenant_n as_o offer_v only_o and_o so_o expect_v pardon_n not_o because_o god_n be_v actual_o engage_v to_o give_v it_o to_o he_o as_o in_o the_o other_o case_n but_o because_o god_n do_v offer_v to_o accept_v of_o he_o on_o these_o term_n and_o then_o to_o pardon_v he_o some_o general_a observation_n concern_v preach_v and_o especial_o application_n have_v now_o go_v through_o these_o epistle_n we_o may_v see_v how_o wise_o and_o serious_o our_o lord_n jesus_n the_o prince_n of_o pastor_n who_o have_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a give_v unto_o he_o do_v from_o heaven_n speak_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o these_o church_n to_o who_o they_o be_v direct_v wherein_o we_o may_v have_v a_o excellent_a copy_n according_a to_o which_o minister_n ought_v to_o carry_v themselves_o in_o discharge_v of_o their_o trust._n we_o conceive_v therefore_o it_o will_v not_o be_v impertinent_a to_o shut_v up_o these_o epistle_n with_o some_o general_a direction_n concern_v the_o way_n of_o minister_n make_v application_n to_o heater_n which_o can_v hardly_o any_o where_o else_o more_o clear_o full_o and_o together_o be_v gather_v and_o although_o every_o thing_n may_v not_o be_v particular_o pitch_v upon_o which_o be_v necessary_a in_o preach_v that_o not_o be_v the_o spirit_n intent_n in_o the_o place_n yet_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o as_o his_o prosecute_n of_o the_o respective_a case_n of_o these_o church_n be_v very_o comprehensive_a so_o it_o can_v be_v but_o most_o worthy_a of_o imitation_n 1._o in_o general_n we_o see_v that_o minister_n in_o their_o application_n aught_o to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n and_o person_n to_o who_o they_o preach_v to_o erroneous_a people_n or_o such_o as_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o error_n more_o convince_o to_o the_o secure_a more_o sharp_o to_o the_o afflict_a and_o tender_a more_o comfortable_o etc._n etc._n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o our_o lord_n deal_v with_o these_o church_n 2._o minister_n ought_v in_o their_o doctrine_n to_o apply_v themselves_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n to_o wit_n to_o ruler_n and_o people_n to_o hypocrite_n and_o open_o profane_a yea_o to_o the_o good_a and_o these_o that_o have_v most_o tenderness_n reprove_v all_o convince_a all_n as_o there_o shall_v be_v cause_n so_o that_o neither_o hoplesnesse_n of_o profit_v some_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v desperate_a nor_o preposterous_a affection_n to_o these_o who_o be_v tender_a and_o affectionate_a ought_v to_o mar_v this_o manner_n of_o deal_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v our_o lord_n jesus_n do_v threaten_v profane_a and_o gross_a erroneous_a jezebel_n upon_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o backsliden_fw-mi though_o godly_a ephesus_n upon_o the_o other_o sometime_o it_o be_v more_o difficult_a free_o and_o faithful_o to_o reprove_v one_o that_o be_v godly_a or_o to_o withstand_v one_o peter_n than_o to_o threaten_v or_o contend_v with_o many_o that_o be_v profane_a and_o yet_o both_o be_v necessary_a and_o profitable_a for_o edification_n 3._o this_o universal_a application_n to_o all_o sort_n will_v yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v manage_v with_o spiritual_a wisdom_n and_o prudence_n so_o that_o every_o one_o may_v get_v their_o own_o allowance_n hence_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o threaten_v the_o secure_a and_o stubborn_a that_o yet_o he_o except_v these_o who_o be_v not_o defile_v and_o so_o comfort_v the_o faithful_a as_o the_o profane_a may_v not_o have_v a_o ground_n to_o take_v the_o same_o consolation_n with_o they_o this_o be_v a_o main_a qualification_n of_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n right_o to_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o follow_v all_o application_n promiscuous_o and_o in_o heap_n together_o in_o any_o auditory_a without_o such_o discriminate_a expression_n as_o may_v guard_v against_o confusion_n therein_o especial_o as_o to_o these_o four_o 1._o that_o a_o tender_a soul_n may_v be_v so_o strengthen_v and_o confirm_v as_o a_o secure_a person_n be_v not_o more_o harden_v and_o that_o a_o presumptuous_a hypocrite_n be_v so_o strike_v at_o as_o a_o exercise_v soul_n be_v not_o wound_v 2._o when_o both_o the_o good_a and_o profane_a be_v in_o one_o fault_n the_o one_o be_v otherwise_o to_o be_v reprove_v and_o restore_v than_o the_o other_o and_o we_o see_v ephesus_n be_v more_o tender_o deal_v with_o than_o laodicia_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n gal._n 6.1_o 3._o the_o fault_n of_o believer_n will_v be_v so_o reprove_v as_o with_o these_o their_o state_n and_o what_o be_v commendable_a in_o their_o practice_n be_v not_o condemn_v and_o reject_v also_o but_o that_o there_o be_v intermix_v commendation_n or_o approbation_n of_o what_o be_v approvable_a lest_o godliness_n suffer_v when_o the_o fault_n of_o a_o godly_a person_n be_v reprove_v and_o lest_o the_o sentence_n go_v beyond_o the_o master_n intent_n which_o be_v not_o to_o condemn_v the_o person_n but_o to_o reprove_v the_o fault_n as_o the_o lord_n do_v tender_o distinguish_v these_o in_o the_o case_n of_o ephesus_n and_o pergamos_n
over_o to_o his_o commendation_n what_o he_o have_v do_v obs._n 5._o the_o faith_n of_o interest_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n his_o purchase_n be_v the_o most_o kindly_a motive_n to_o make_v folk_n bless_v and_o praise_v he_o that_o be_v when_o they_o can_v say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o obs._n 6._o that_o as_o it_o be_v a_o life_n that_o have_v many_o rich_a advantage_n so_o there_o be_v no_o such_o heart-some_a life_n in_o all_o the_o world_n as_o to_o be_v among_o the_o redeem_a they_o have_v a_o uninterrupted_n song_n and_o will_v continue_v to_o have_v it_o when_o all_o other_o will_v howl_v obs._n 7._o from_o christ_n take_v the_o book_n and_o open_n of_o it_o from_o his_o do_v this_o and_o the_o redeem_a their_o praise_n observe_v christ_n do_v all_o we_o enjoy_v all_o and_o therefore_o shall_v praise_v for_o all_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a task_n that_o the_o redeem_a have_v in_o respect_n of_o that_o which_o christ_n have_v obs._n 8._o there_o be_v a_o sweet_a consent_n here_o no_o different_a note_n they_o have_v all_o one_o song_n no_o different_a opinion_n no_o contradiction_n no_o divide_a praise_n nor_o prayer_n nor_o fast_n no_o separate_n in_o this_o worship_n of_o one_o of_o the_o redeem_a from_o another_o all_o concur_v which_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o least_o advantage_n once_o they_o will_v all_o meet_v and_o sweet_o agree_v together_o obs._n 9_o it_o be_v but_o a_o mint_n at_o the_o best_a that_o the_o saint_n make_v at_o the_o lamb_n praise_n their_o praise_n be_v but_o a_o beginning_n to_o it_o a_o assent_n to_o the_o work_n or_o a_o conviction_n of_o their_o duty_n when_o they_o begin_v they_o say_v only_o he_o be_v worthy_a to_o have_v it_o and_o when_o they_o have_v undertake_v they_o must_v sing_v who_o can_v show_v forth_o all_o thy_o praise_n psal._n 106._o therefore_o here_o amen_o be_v the_o first_o word_n and_o they_o fall_v down_o silent_a praise_n overmaster_v they_o it_o be_v the_o great_a duty_n and_o these_o that_o praise_v till_o they_o think_v they_o have_v do_v enough_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o it_o be_v right_a in_o this_o respect_n to_o leave_v it_o as_o we_o begin_v obs._n 10._o all_o their_o song_n be_v worthy_a worthy_a be_v the_o lamb_n as_o if_o they_o say_v if_o we_o can_v praise_v thou_o thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o have_v it_o and_o that_o be_v all_o we_o can_v attain_v to_o to_o acknowledge_v praise_n be_v thy_o due_a obs._n when_o folk_n have_v go_v their_o yond-most_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o praise_n it_o be_v rather_o to_o say_v and_o think_v it_o shall_v be_v than_o any_o way_n to_o rest_v as_o though_o it_o be_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o god_n who_o be_v to_o be_v praise_v be_v far_o above_o all_o blessing_n and_o possible_a praise_n neh._n 9.5_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o christ_n death_n or_o if_o it_o be_v proper_o a_o satisfaction_n beside_o what_o observation_n have_v be_v already_o hint_v at_o and_o hold_v forth_o from_o this_o chapter_n there_o be_v two_o more_o which_o be_v clear_a of_o themselves_o from_o the_o word_n and_o contribute_v much_o to_o the_o clear_n of_o two_o concern_v truth_n in_o these_o day_n not_o a_o little_a controvert_v we_o may_v insist_v a_o little_a more_o in_o speak_v to_o they_o as_o the_o place_n give_v ground_n the_o one_o be_v concern_v the_o nature_n the_o other_o be_v concern_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n the_o first_o observation_n be_v that_o christ_n death_n and_o suffering_n be_v proper_o a_o price_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n and_o be_v purposely_o offer_v unto_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n as_o such_o so_o that_o when_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n to_o say_v so_o be_v wrong_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o when_o at_o least_o by_o the_o necessity_n flow_v from_o the_o establish_a law_n and_o curse_n there_o behove_v to_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n to_o justice_n before_o any_o sinner_n can_v be_v free_v from_o the_o sentence_n then_o our_o lord_n jesus_n do_v offer_v himself_o to_o suffer_v in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o elect_a for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o justice_n which_o according_o be_v afterward_o perform_v by_o he_o and_o upon_o that_o account_n accept_v by_o god_n the_o scope_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o show_v first_o that_o not_o only_a christ_n death_n and_o suffering_n be_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n he_o preach_v nor_o yet_o in_o the_o second_o place_n only_o to_o give_v thereby_o a_o pattern_n of_o obedience_n to_o we_o for_o these_o two_o may_v be_v and_o be_v in_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o many_o martyr_n and_o to_o attribute_v no_o more_o to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v blasphemous_a nor_o in_o the_o three_o place_n only_o to_o procure_v to_o himself_o this_o prerogative_n of_o forgive_a sinner_n their_o sin_n free_o for_o christ_n be_v god_n have_v power_n with_o the_o father_n to_o forgive_v sin_n before_o his_o become_a man_n and_o even_o this_o pretend_a end_n do_v imply_v christ_n death_n to_o be_v a_o price_n for_o make_v of_o a_o purchase_n see_v it_o supponeth_n that_o he_o by_o honour_v god_n and_o do_v what_o be_v pleasant_a to_o he_o do_v procure_v this_o privilege_n to_o forgive_v other_o free_o which_o certain_o do_v imply_v that_o these_o suffering_n of_o his_o have_v a_o meritorious_a and_o satisfy_a virtue_n before_o god_n but_o these_o end_n of_o the_o soci●ians_n be_v such_o as_o destroy_v the_o godhead_n and_o personality_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n as_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o be_v purposely_o mould_v for_o the_o support_v of_o that_o blasphemy_n we_o need_v not_o stand_v much_o upon_o the_o disprove_v of_o they_o but_o we_o say_v beyond_o these_o our_o lord_n jesus_n his_o death_n be_v purposely_o intend_v by_o he_o and_o actual_o accept_v by_o jehovah_n as_o a_o proper_a price_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o clear_v this_o a_o little_a when_o we_o speak_v of_o satisfaction_n these_o thing_n short_o be_v intend_v first_o that_o as_o ●_o man_n have_v make_v himself_o liable_a to_o the_o curse_n for_o provoke_v of_o god_n and_o to_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n as_o most_o of_o all_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v thereby_o have_v wrong_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n by_o dare_v to_o disobey_v he_o and_o to_o s●ight_v his_o authority_n so_o there_o be_v in_o christ_n take_v on_o of_o that_o debt_n and_o humble_v of_o himself_o to_o suffer_v for_o the_o same_o a_o proportionablnesse_n and_o a_o equivalency_n for_o the_o vindicate_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o holiness_n justice_n and_o sovereignty_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v these_o shine_n more_o than_o if_o the_o sinner_n have_v be_v actual_o putat_a for_o satisfy_v in_o their_o own_o person_n for_o t●at_v the_o father_n fellow_n equal_a and_o only_o beget_v son_n shall_v humble_v himself_o and_o become_v ma●_n and_o in_o that_o nature_n suffer_v and_o that_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n shall_v make_v his_o sword_n awake_a against_o he_o and_o smi●e_v he_o etc._n etc._n do_v much_o more_o abundant_o declare_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o will_v prosecute_v his_o threaten_n and_o his_o sovereignty_n and_o authority_n in_o that_o he_o be_v obey_v and_o submit_v unto_o by_o such_o a_o excellent_a person_n as_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n than_o if_o either_o man_n have_v not_o sin_v or_o he_o who_o be_v but_o a_o wretched_a creature_n shall_v have_v be_v casten_z into_o hell_n for_o by_o this_o justice_n have_v never_o be_v satisfy_v nor_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v by_o such_o a_o glorious_a instance_n as_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n so_o that_o we_o be_v to_o conceive_v of_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o matter_n as_o that_o word_n use_v to_o be_v understand_v among_o man_n that_o be_v when_o a_o injure_a or_o wrong_a person_n be_v appease_v and_o satisfy_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o party_n that_o have_v do_v he_o injury_n by_o the_o interveen_a recompense_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o some_o other_o purposely_o by_o such_o a_o equiu●lent_a compensation_n intend_v the_o same_o second_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o satisfaction_n in_o this_o case_n it_o do_v respect_n god_n purpose_n and_o intention_n in_o design_v the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o mediator_n for_o this_o very_a end_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n so_o that_o when_o there_o be_v no_o imaginable_a satisfaction_n to_o be_v expect_v from_o creature_n whereby_o there_o may_v be_v a_o vindication_n of_o god_n justice_n that_o so_o way_n may_v be_v make_v to_o pardon_v elect_a sinner_n for_o this_o very_a end_n a_o body_n be_v design_v and_o prepare_v for_o the_o mediator_n and_o as_o it_o be_v is●_n 53.6_o the_o lord_n lay_v upon_o he_o the_o
member_n of_o that_o body_n which_o god_n have_v bless_v to_o some_o for_o constrain_a they_o to_o flee_v over_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o alone_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n yea_o 4._o do_v not_o their_o doctrine_n pursue_v man_n till_o death_n and_o after_o death_n to_o torment_v their_o peremptory_a exact_v of_o auricular_a confession_n of_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o under_o the_o pain_n of_o damnation_n their_o sound_n of_o the_o man_n confidence_n upon_o the_o pope_n pardon_n the_o priest_n absolution_n his_o own_o penance_n and_o holiness_n or_o the_o virtue_n of_o some_o sacrament_n yea_o sometime_o of_o some_o idolatrous_a invention_n as_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o their_o principle_n confer_v grace_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o work_n as_o they_o call_v it_o and_o such_o like_a can_v furnish_v the_o soul_n with_o solid_a confidence_n beside_o the_o fear_n of_o purgatory_n do_v weaken_v that_o hope_n or_o expectation_n of_o ease_n which_o otherwise_o man_n may_v have_v from_o death_n in_o this_o sense_n though_o they_o seek_v death_n yet_o it_o flee_v from_o they_o and_o they_o obtain_v not_o their_o desire_n by_o it_o and_o their_o vexation_n die_v not_o vers._n 7._o again_o in_o the_o seven_o verse_n he_o return_v to_o the_o particular_a description_n of_o these_o locust_n 1._o in_o their_o appearance_n or_o shape_n like_o horse_n that_o be_v strong_a and_o swift_a and_o stout_a as_o prepare_v unto_o battle_n so_o gregory_n before_o speak_v of_o priest_n call_z they_o sacerdotum_fw-la exercitus_fw-la to_o usher_n in_o antichrist_n they_o be_v compare_v to_o horse_n prepare_v unto_o battle_n because_o of_o their_o courage_n and_o expeditnesse_n in_o undertake_v and_o prosecute_a their_o design_n and_o because_o of_o the_o success_n which_o follow_v they_o who_o as_o a_o conquer_a army_n do_v prevail_v over_o the_o world_n which_o be_v not_o arm_v against_o they_o for_o which_o cause_n these_o locust_n joel_n 2._o be_v compare_v to_o horse_n and_o army_n 2._o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v crown_v with_o crown_n like_o gold_n to_o set_v forth_o their_o outward_a grandour_n and_o seem_a stateliness_n and_o authority_n which_o be_v not_o so_o indeed_o though_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o and_o therefore_o say_v not_o to_o be_v gold_n but_o like_o gold_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v like_o king_n in_o pomp_n and_o army_n in_o strength_n this_o agree_v well_o to_o their_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o they_o have_v face_n as_o the_o face_n of_o man_n that_o be_v a_o pretend_a affablenesse_n and_o sociableness_n in_o their_o conversation_n thereby_o to_o insinuate_v themselves_o by_o rational_a pretext_n upon_o the_o affection_n of_o man_n yet_o be_v indeed_o nothing_o less_o than_o they_o pretend_v 4._o vers_fw-la 8._o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v woman_n hair_n which_o hold_v forth_o a_o effeminatnesse_n and_o vain_a delicatnesse_n in_o their_o disposition_n and_o carriage_n and_o a_o whorish_a way_n of_o deck_v themselves_o and_o allure_a other_o to_o their_o fornication_n for_o which_o this_o kingdom_n chap._n 17._o be_v call_v the_o great_a whore_n 5._o their_o tooth_n be_v as_o the_o tooth_n of_o lion_n that_o be_v cruel_a and_o ravenous_a notwithstanding_o of_o the_o former_a appearance_n devour_v the_o soul_n of_o these_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o the_o body_n of_o these_o that_o oppose_v they_o and_o the_o good_n and_o estate_n of_o both_o like_o these_o mat._n 23.15_o who_o devour_v widow_n house_n and_o that_o under_o pretext_n of_o long_a prayer_n the_o horse_n mention_v vers_fw-la 17._o have_v lion_n head_n here_o they_o have_v only_a lion_n tooth_n with_o the_o face_n of_o man_n and_o hair_n of_o woman_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n be_v although_o both_o agree_v in_o cruelty_n and_o destroy_v yet_o the_o popish_a clergy_n signify_v here_o do_v more_o subtle_o and_o covert_o destroy_v soul_n therefore_o be_v they_o describe_v by_o lion_n tooth_n only_o which_o be_v not_o so_o obvious_a to_o sight_n the_o turk_n again_o of_o who_o the_o six_o trumpet_n speak_v do_v more_o manifest_o appear_v what_o they_o be_v therefore_o be_v describe_v with_o lion_n head_n vers._n 9_o he_o proceed_v to_o describe_v these_o locust_n in_o their_o defensive_a and_o offensive_a arm_n they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v breastplate_n as_o it_o be_v breastplate_n of_o iron_n and_o the_o sound_n of_o their_o wing_n be_v as_o the_o sound_n of_o chariot_n of_o many_o horse_n run_v to_o battle_n the_o first_o part_n show_v their_o security_n from_o all_o danger_n and_o the_o advantage_n they_o have_v in_o their_o war_n there_o be_v no_o hurt_v of_o they_o more_o than_o there_o be_v of_o hurt_a horseman_n well_o arm_v with_o armour_n of_o iron_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o vers_n show_v the_o horrible_a noise_n and_o terror_n wherewith_o they_o prosecute_v their_o design_n when_o they_o find_v opposition_n so_o that_o army_n with_o horseman_n and_o chariot_n be_v not_o more_o horrible_a nor_o violent_a in_o their_o encounter_n than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o application_n to_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o these_o may_v be_v make_v good_a by_o the_o many_o privilege_n and_o immunity_n which_o they_o possess_v whereby_o they_o be_v exempt_v from_o dependence_n on_o all_o monarch_n but_o their_o own_o by_o the_o dread_n of_o excommunication_n and_o thundering_n of_o church-censure_n while_o they_o keep_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o purgatory_n they_o be_v not_o only_o free_a of_o fear_n or_o hurt_v from_o other_o but_o also_o when_o they_o meet_v with_o opposition_n from_o emperor_n and_o king_n do_v with_o such_o clamour_n and_o violence_n so_o persecute_v they_o that_o no_o enemy_n or_o army_n have_v be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n so_o terrible_a as_o they_o make_v the_o world_n astonish_v with_o the_o stupendiousnesse_n of_o their_o pretend_a power_n the_o effect_n of_o this_o have_v be_v often_o find_v as_o history_n do_v witness_v the_o 10._o vers_fw-la do_v continue_v the_o description_n of_o these_o locust_n in_o three_o particular_n more_o the_o first_o be_v they_o have_v tail_n like_a unto_o scorpion_n tail_n isa._n 5.19_o do_v hold_v forth_o the_o flatter_a and_o fawn_a humour_n of_o false_a teacher_n who_o insinuate_v themselves_o by_o flattery_n and_o lie_n as_o dog_n to_o who_o they_o be_v compare_v do_v with_o their_o tail_n 2._o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v sting_n in_o their_o tail_n that_o be_v not_o only_o their_o mouth_n and_o head_n be_v hurtful_a but_o their_o tail_n that_o which_o seem_v most_o pleasant_a to_o other_o and_o be_v most_o delight_v in_o do_v often_o prove_v most_o noisome_a and_o hurtful_a to_o they_o such_o fair_a word_n and_o pleasant_a speech_n of_o corrupt_a man_n have_v ever_o a_o sting_n in_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o seduction_n of_o the_o simple_a rom._n 16.18_o 3._o their_o continuance_n be_v describe_v their_o power_n be_v to_o hurt_v man_n five_o month_n this_o be_v former_o speak_v of_o vers_fw-la 5._o and_o be_v again_o repeat_v here_o either_o because_o it_o be_v mention_v former_o by_o way_n of_o limitation_n that_o they_o shall_v torment_v no_o long_o than_o the_o time_n appoint_v here_o it_o be_v to_o show_v their_o continuance_n which_o shall_v be_v till_o the_o appoint_a time_n come_v or_o it_o be_v double_v to_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n overrule_a providence_n in_o time_v both_o the_o rise_n continuance_n and_o close_o of_o this_o dreadful_a plague_n this_o verse_n also_o be_v particular_o compare_v with_o verse_n 19_o follow_v will_v also_o clear_v the_o plague_n threaten_v by_o these_o two_o trumpet_n to_o be_v of_o distinct_a and_o different_a nature_n last_o vers._n 11._o their_o government_n be_v describe_v in_o three_o 1._o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o locust_n prov._n 30.27_o it_o be_v monarchick_a they_o have_v a_o king_n over_o they_o that_o be_v although_o they_o be_v many_o and_o various_a and_o different_a among_o themselves_o yet_o be_v they_o all_o subordinate_a to_o one_o supreme_a head_n who_o exerce_v absolute_a and_o independent_a authority_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o who_o live_v in_o royal_a state_n and_o majesty_n in_o the_o world_n have_v uncontroverted_a and_o illimited_a power_n within_o that_o kingdom_n and_o have_v all_o other_o in_o subordination_n to_o he_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o indigitate_v any_o other_o by_o this_o than_o the_o pope_n 2._o this_o monarch_n be_v describe_v by_o his_o office_n which_o be_v to_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n which_o hold_v forth_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o he_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o that_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n one_o commissionated_a and_o send_v in_o embassage_n from_o it_o for_o its_o behoof_n and_o so_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o devil_n himself_o
common_a war_n and_o enemy_n he_o with_o his_o minister_n saint_n and_o servant_n be_v one_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 12.3_o consider_v the_o actor_n it_o be_v these_o i._n e._n the_o horn_n chap._n 12.7_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n chap._n 11_o and_o 13._o it_o be_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v the_o head_n and_o chap._n 18.24_o there_o the_o blood_n be_v find_v in_o the_o whore_n here_o it_o be_v the_o horn_n all_o concur_v and_o share_n both_o in_o the_o sin_n and_o judgement_n but_o diverse_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o fountain_n and_o root_n that_o this_o enimity_n flow_v from_o the_o beast_n be_v his_o special_a lieutenant_n and_o general_n the_o horn_n be_v the_o more_o immediate_a actor_n by_o which_o the_o beast_n push_v the_o whore_n not_o only_o concur_v but_o she_o blow_v the_o hatred_n and_o pusheth-on_a by_o advice_n law_n and_o edict_n though_o the_o as_o a_o ecclesiastic_a body_n put_v none_o to_o death_n herself_o yet_o do_v she_o put_v the_o horn_n to_o it_o who_o be_v she_o immediate_a executioner_n this_o than_o be_v a_o character_n of_o these_o king_n who_o shall_v give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n they_o shall_v persecute_v christ_n true_a church_n for_o a_o long_a time_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o whore_n and_o beast_n the_o last_o word_n add_v be_v concern_v the_o success_n the_o victory_n be_v on_o the_o lamb_n side_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v subjoin_v he_o be_v victor_n in_o his_o member_n and_o cause_n these_o three_o way_n as_o chap._n 12._o 1._o when_o in_o their_o suffering_n they_o continue_v steadfast_a and_o overcome_v even_o to_o the_o outweary_v of_o the_o persecutor_n by_o their_o patience_n who_o be_v more_o enslave_v and_o overcome_v in_o act_v than_o the_o other_o in_o suffering_n 2._o he_o overcome_v by_o keep_v truth_n and_o a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n in_o the_o despite_n of_o they_o that_o the_o prophet_n end_n their_o testimony_n in_o despite_n of_o they_o and_o the_o church_n spread_v and_o multiply_v even_o under_o they_o as_o under_o dioclesian_n etc._n etc._n 3._o he_o overcome_v by_o bring_v sad_a judgement_n on_o his_o persecuter_n and_o bring_v his_o church_n through_o and_o set_v up_o the_o witness_n as_o chap._n 11._o when_o they_o seem_v low_a and_o by_o make_v the_o world_n subject_n to_o the_o gospel_n in_o end_n either_o by_o move_v they_o to_o yield_v or_o by_o crush_a they_o and_o restrain_v they_o from_o do_v any_o hurt_n to_o it_o he_o thus_o prevail_v the_o reason_n add_v to_o confirm_v we_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o victory_n that_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o be_v from_o two_o ground_n 1._o from_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o captain_n he_o have_v no_o equal_a for_o he_o even_o this_o lamb_n be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n word_n set_v forth_o especial_o his_o godhead_n in_o three_o 1._o his_o sovereignty_n and_o absolute_a dominion_n over_o all_o 2._o his_o power_n be_v able_a to_o command_v all_o none_o so_o great_a a_o king_n as_o he._n 3._o his_o right_n for_o justice_n be_v on_o his_o side_n these_o title_n agree_v to_o christ_n proper_o as_o god_n so_o chap._n 19_o and_o yet_o as_o mediator_n in_o some_o respect_n for_o the_o behoof_n of_o his_o church_n he_o be_v make_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n eph._n 1.22_o and_o have_v all_o power_n over_o all_o not_o as_o over_o the_o elect_n who_o be_v in_o a_o peculiar_a way_n commit_v to_o he_o but_o in_o a_o deputation_n for_o their_o cause_n and_o good_a he_o have_v a_o delegated_a power_n as_o mediator_n to_o restrain_v punish_v raise_v up_o or_o cast_v down_o king_n or_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n as_o he_o think_v meet_v the_o first_o be_v essential_a to_o he_o as_o god_n the_o second_o voluntary_a and_o give_v to_o he_o as_o mediator_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o warrior_n or_o army_n none_o such_o be_v in_o the_o world_n they_o be_v such_o soldier_n as_o be_v all_o saint_n 1._o call_v that_o be_v effectual_o so_o from_o the_o estate_n of_o nature_n to_o grace_n and_o so_o sanctify_v 2._o choose_a they_o be_v both_o choose_v comparative_o and_o choose_v and_o make_v use_n of_o by_o he_o to_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v overcome_v by_o any_o power_n but_o be_v conqueror_n 3._o they_o be_v faithful_a honest_a at_o the_o heart_n and_o real_a in_o his_o service_n which_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o former_a two_o they_o stick_v constant_o unto_o he_o which_o show_v wherein_o their_o victory_n most_o consist_v that_o be_v in_o their_o faith_n 1_o job._n 5.4_o though_o even_o in_o suffer_v yet_o they_o quit_v he_o not_o these_o be_v excellent_a qualification_n now_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v if_o there_o be_v none_o other_o on_o christ_n side_n but_o such_o what_o shall_v be_v account_v of_o all_o hypocrite_n though_o formal_a professor_n ans._n 1._o they_o may_v be_v for_o christ_n in_o one_o thing_n as_o in_o a_o point_n of_o truth_n yet_o against_o he_o in_o the_o end_n they_o be_v not_o for_o his_o glory_n therefore_o be_v not_o on_o his_o side_n for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o so_o with_o he_o be_v against_o he_o 2._o all_o unrenewed_a man_n be_v christ_n enemy_n and_o though_o they_o sometime_o in_o some_o particular_a side_n or_o seem_v to_o side_n with_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o do_v as_o service_n to_o he_o as_o in_o judas_n who_o follow_v he_o for_o the_o bag_n and_o those_o that_o preach_v he_o out_o of_o envy_n philip._n 1.15_o yet_o be_v they_o but_o serve_v themselves_o and_o not_o christ_n and_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o do_v he_o a_o affront_n when_o it_o serve_v their_o purpose_n as_o judas_n do_v he_o have_v no_o follower_n indeed_o but_o where_o grace_n make_v they_o nor_o will_v he_o count_v man_n by_o their_o practice_n but_o by_o their_o end_n and_o motive_n neither_o can_v one_o be_v faithful_a to_o the_o end_n but_o one_o that_o be_v call_v and_o choose_v other_o be_v one_o time_n or_o another_o utter_o foil_v to_o the_o shame_n of_o their_o profession_n and_o he_o will_v own_v none_o such_o as_o soldier_n to_o he_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o application_n two_o thing_n will_v be_v clear_v 1._o if_o this_o pprophecy_n be_v fulfil_v 2._o how_o it_o be_v fulfil_v or_o when_o and_o much_o business_n be_v here_o make_v by_o papist_n who_o make_v their_o main_a demonstration_n from_o this_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v because_o say_v they_o this_o be_v not_o fulfil_v 1._o that_o this_o be_v fulfil_v may_v be_v evidence_v thus_o arg._n 1._o if_o these_o province_n that_o be_v in_o johns_n time_n without_o king_n be_v now_o kingdom_n have_v their_o own_o government_n without_o any_o dependence_n on_o the_o roman_a empire_n then_o this_o pprophecy_n be_v fulfil_v but_o the_o first_o in_o experience_n be_v truth_n look_v through_o all_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v province_n then_o not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a emperor_n now_o save_v it_o be_v germany_n alone_o which_o yet_o indeed_o be_v not_o so_o but_o all_o have_v their_o several_a independent_a king_n now_o of_o a_o long_a time_n the_o connexion_n of_o the_o major_n may_v be_v make_v out_o thus_o that_o change_n that_o have_v since_o come_v upon_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o the_o upsetting_a of_o these_o many_o new_a kingdom_n and_o king_n which_o have_v no_o kingdom_n then_o be_v neither_o no_o change_n at_o all_o but_o consistent_a with_o the_o head_n that_o then_o be_v or_o it_o be_v some_o other_o change_n than_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o this_o pprophecy_n or_o three_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o speak_v of_o here_o but_o neither_o of_o the_o first_o two_o can_v be_v say_v not_o the_o first_o that_o the_o empire_n be_v the_o same_o now_o that_o it_o be_v then_o for_o the_o spirit_n put_v a_o clear_a difference_n betwixt_o this_o last_o state_n chap._n 13._o and_o the_o first_o under_o emperor_n that_o in_o the_o first_o the_o head_n be_v crown_v here_o the_o horn_n and_o if_o there_o be_v not_o difference_n betwixt_o province_n subject_a to_o one_o empire_n that_o rule_v over_o they_o all_o and_o province_n make_v kingdom_n rule_v within_o themselves_o without_o any_o dependence_n on_o that_o head_n there_o be_v difference_n in_o nothing_o for_o king_n can_v be_v horn_n to_o the_o emperor_n see_v they_o act_v not_o for_o he_o but_o for_o another_o thus_o the_o civil_a head_n have_v the_o crown_n on_o the_o head_n not_o on_o the_o horn_n the_o ecclesiastic_a head_n have_v they_o on_o the_o horn_n it_o be_v consistent_a with_o it_o to_o have_v sovereign_n for_o his_o vassal_n which_o can_v be_v in_o a_o civil_a state_n for_o so_o either_o the_o king_n be_v not_o
be_v decay_v almost_o and_o have_v again_o multitude_n bring_v out_o of_o that_o darkness_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n former_o obscure_v and_o so_o we_o take_v it_o here_o 1._o it_o be_v call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o general_a death_n and_o darkness_n over_o the_o church_n in_o antichrist_n time_n which_o be_v as_o a_o death_n this_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o resurrection_n 2._o it_o be_v call_v a_o first_o as_o distinguish_v from_o the_o general_a resurrection_n to_o come_v when_o god_n shall_v raise_v good_a and_o bad_a dan._n 12._o and_o bring_v they_o to_o judgement_n these_o both_o meet_a together_o here_o yet_o it_o will_v seem_v that_o see_v he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o church_n together_o as_o live_v after_o the_o death_n and_o darkness_n she_o have_v be_v in_o as_o if_o her_o former_a honest_a member_n be_v arisen_a it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scope_n to_o take-in_a especial_o the_o out-breaking_a of_o a_o general_a profession_n of_o truth_n by_o saint_n in_o a_o visible_a church-state_n yet_o so_o as_o include_v the_o former_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o call_v live_v simple_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o second_o death_n follow_v but_o live_v again_o or_o rise_v in_o respect_n of_o what_o be_v past_a and_o the_o first_o resurrection_n as_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o resurrection_n come_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o this_o first_o resurrection_n be_v the_o same_o here_o with_o live_v former_o mention_v and_o oppose_v to_o the_o death_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o menly_a still_o in_o and_o therefore_o be_v contemporary_a with_o and_o peculiar_a unto_o these_o thousand_o year_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o expression_n which_o sume_v up_o the_o saint_n good_a condition_n during_o that_o time_n this_o say_v he_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n that_o be_v this_o live_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o six_o verse_n he_o subjoin_v two_o thing_n to_o this_o 1._o the_o qualification_n in_o general_a of_o these_o who_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o this_o great_a privilege_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n 2._o the_o advantage_n and_o prerogative_n that_o follow_v it_o both_o which_o will_v confirm_v that_o by_o this_o resurrection_n be_v understand_v the_o church_n good_a condition_n outward_a and_o inward_a sincere_a reality_n of_o grace_n in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o their_o advantage_n in_o general_a which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o their_o qualification_n be_v two_o 1._o they_o be_v or_o he_o be_v bless_v that_o comprehend_v all_o he_o be_v a_o happy_a man_n who_o shall_v share_v of_o this_o condition_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o christ._n obj._n butler_n may_v it_o be_v say_v be_v not_o all_o happy_a who_o ever_o believe_v why_o be_v it_o so_o say_v now_o especial_o answ._n so_o be_v all_o that_o ever_o die_v in_o christ_n yet_o be_v there_o a_o peculiar_a blessedness_n that_o belong_v to_o some_o time_n as_o chap._n 14.13_o so_o it_o be_v in_o blessedness_n here_o now_o in_o this_o time_n it_o have_v to_o believer_n more_o clearness_n more_o light_a liberty_n and_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o with_o few_o temptation_n and_o strait_n general_o than_o at_o other_o time_n before_o and_o after_o it_o be_v a_o good_a time_n to_o fall_v in_o and_o happy_a be_v he_o who_o shall_v have_v his_o lot_n in_o it_o as_o chap._n 19_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o be_v call_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lamb_n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la the_o second_o qualification_n will_v clear_v this_o and_o holy_a be_v he_o that_o do_v hold_v forth_o in_o general_a a_o abound_v in_o holiness_n during_o this_o time_n when_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v provoke_v to_o jealousy_n see_v here_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n think_v not_o that_o all_o who_o shall_v profess_v during_o this_o time_n be_v partaker_n of_o this_o resurrection_n no_o that_o be_v a_o singular_o happy_a man_n and_o bless_a and_o a_o singular_o holy_a man_n he_o must_v be_v and_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o qualify_v and_o fit_v for_o it_o in_o more_o holiness_n than_o ordinary_a this_o be_v not_o as_o if_o all_o saint_n then_o on_o earth_n be_v more_o holy_a than_o other_o that_o be_v before_o that_o time_n or_o shall_v follow_v after_o but_o that_o in_o general_a holiness_n shall_v at_o that_o time_n be_v more_o rife_o in_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o that_o reign_v of_o all_o saint_n must_v not_o be_v so_o understand_v as_o if_o all_o individual_o shall_v flourish_v in_o the_o world_n but_o that_o general_o their_o condition_n shall_v be_v better_o than_o former_o or_o take_v these_o word_n general_o to_o show_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o resurrection_n or_o what_o they_o be_v the_o better_a that_o partake_v of_o it_o for_o both_o may_v be_v they_o be_v bless_v singulary_o and_o holy_a which_o show_v 1._o wherein_o their_o blessedness_n especial_o consist_v to_o wit_n in_o holiness_n that_o be_v their_o happiness_n which_o be_v more_o than_o any_o outward_a liberty_n to_o deborde_n if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o singular_a thing_n of_o holiness_n be_v speak_v of_o in_o that_o time_n answ._n the_o degree_n it_o be_v like_a will_v be_v more_o eminent_a 2._o the_o extent_n more_o universal_a and_o 3._o it_o will_v be_v much_o now_o when_o hypocrite_n abound_v as_o always_o they_o do_v when_o religion_n be_v in_o request_n to_o be_v holy_a then_o hypocrisy_n and_o prosperity_n be_v great_a enemy_n to_o grace_v than_o open_a profanity_n and_o persecution_n but_o he_o that_o partake_v of_o this_o resurrection_n he_o be_v both_o happy_a and_o holy_a together_o the_o advantage_n more_o particular_o be_v express_v and_o they_o be_v three_o in_o number_n the_o first_o be_v negative_o express_v on_o such_o the_o second_o death_n shall_v have_v no_o power_n this_o second_o death_n be_v speak_v of_o chap._n 2_o and_o it_o follow_v chap._n 21.8_o in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v to_o be_v casten_z in_o the_o lake_n that_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n that_o be_v hell_n if_o any_o say_v so_o we_o here_o make_v three_o death_n or_o four_o 1._o spiritual_a 2._o natural_a or_o temporal_a death_n which_o come_v on_o all_o 3._o eternal_a death_n and_o 4._o we_o have_v speak_v of_o a_o general_a death_n or_o deadness_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o defection_n of_o church_n answ._n look_v to_o every_o death_n and_o put_v it_o with_o its_o own_o contradistinguish_a member_n and_o there_o will_v be_v but_o two_o as_o 1._o a_o spiritual_a death_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o sin_n and_o 2._o of_o wrath_n in_o hell_n again_o a_o temporal_a death_n of_o the_o body_n common_a to_o all_o and_o 2._o a_o eternal_a death_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o be_v the_o second_o here_o 3._o there_o be_v a_o general_a deadness_n in_o the_o church_n great_a eclipse_v under_o antichrist_n and_o the_o woman_n flee_v and_o the_o witness_n kill_v and_o there_o be_v a_o second_o death_n fore-against_a that_o of_o the_o general_a pass_v of_o the_o sentence_n against_o all_o the_o wicked_a together_o however_o these_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o resurrection_n they_o can_v partake_v of_o any_o of_o these_o hence_o it_o appear_v 1._o what_o their_o prerogative_n be_v it_o be_v freedom_n from_o hell_n they_o even_o then_o be_v not_o always_o keep_v from_o the_o first_o death_n but_o from_o the_o second_o death_n 2._o it_o show_v it_o be_v not_o a_o bodily_a resurrection_n here_o for_o many_o such_o be_v not_o necessary_o keep_v from_o hell_n but_o spiritual_a in_o faith_n and_o holiness_n with_o fruit_n the_o second_o advantage_n be_v they_o shall_v be_v priest_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n that_o be_v chap._n 5._o priest_n to_o god_n here_o it_o be_v of_o god_n i_o conceive_v the_o scope_n be_v the_o same_o to_o show_v their_o advancement_n to_o serve_v and_o worship_n god_n as_o priest_n in_o a_o familiar_a way_n or_o it_o may_v be_v priest_n of_o god_n excellent_a priest_n as_o tree_n of_o god_n harp_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n when_o any_o thing_n be_v excellent_a so_o it_o be_v call_v however_o the_o word_n imply_v 1._o that_o be_v a_o great_a privilege_n to_o get_v god_n worship_v and_o to_o be_v true_a worshipper_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v high_a priest_n 2._o that_o believer_n be_v eminent_o admit_v to_o this_o freedom_n at_o this_o time_n by_o this_o resurrection_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o sacrifice_n one_o proper_a to_o the_o law_n and_o another_o common_a to_o the_o gospel_n mal._n 1._o pure_a offering_n a_o contrite_a heart_n etc._n etc._n so_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o priest_n one_o by_o office_n that_o be_v go_v there_o be_v now_o no_o proper_a material_a sacrifice_n and_o that_o be_v not_o mean_v here_o this_o privilege_n be_v applicable_a to_o woman_n and_o child_n who_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o that_o
which_o from_o god_n they_o have_v only_o in_o keep_v till_o this_o day_n by_o hell_n here_o may_v be_v understand_v as_o ordinary_o the_o grave_n there_o be_v one_o word_n for_o both_o in_o the_o original_a or_o these_o body_n if_o any_o be_v that_o be_v in_o hell_n such_o as_o korah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n and_o other_o but_o general_o this_o be_v sure_a that_o by_o these_o place_n sea_n ●●ll_v and_o death_n be_v mean_v all_o place_n where_o dead_a body_n be_v ordinary_o bury_v or_o extraordinary_o crush_v and_o destroy_v they_o shall_v all_o compear_v wherever_o they_o be_v they_o be_v say_v to_o give_v up_o their_o dead_a that_o be_v not_o by_o any_o faculty_n in_o these_o creature_n but_o it_o be_v easy_o speedy_o and_o simple_o as_o if_o in_o box_n they_o have_v be_v keep_v all_o distinct_a and_o now_o they_o lay_v they_o out_o which_o be_v do_v by_o god_n power_n as_o he_o make_v the_o fish_n only_o by_o a_o word_n cast_v out_o jonah_n on_o the_o dry_a land_n whole_a it_o be_v call_v their_o dead_a or_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v in_o they_o to_o show_v 1._o a_o account_n as_o it_o be_v every_o one_o make_v of_o their_o dead_a as_o if_o they_o be_v answerable_a for_o they_o ●_o it_o be_v so_o accurate_a none_o be_v miss_v or_o keep_v back_o 2._o to_o show_v it_o be_v the_o same_o dead_a that_o be_v judge_v and_o in_o the_o same_o body_n that_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v or_o perish_v it_o be_v as_o job_n say_v chap._n 19_o he_o and_o none_o other_o for_o he_o so_o it_o be_v they_o and_o none_o other_o for_o they_o the_o same_o body_n as_o it_o be_v the_o same_o soul_n compearteh_a to_o get_v judgement_n according_a as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o flesh_n it_o be_v suitable_a that_o the_o same_o body_n shall_v share_v with_o the_o soul_n in_o its_o eternal_a condition_n here_o be_v a_o wonder_n a_o thousand_o body_n be_v rot_v together_o possible_o man_n feed_v on_o other_o and_o live_v on_o other_o dead_a body_n yet_o now_o all_o be_v put_v to_o their_o own_o master_n none_o be_v wrong_v marrow_v in_o the_o least_o pickle_n of_o dust_n it_o be_v add_v and_o they_o be_v judge_v this_o show_v that_o this_o resurrection_n go_v before_o their_o sentence_n and_o that_o as_o every_o one_o arise_v and_o none_o be_v miss_v so_o every_o one_o be_v judge_v and_o none_o miss_v a_o just_a sentence_n there_o be_v one_o rule_n as_o there_o be_v one_o judgement_n for_o sin_n take_v impenitent_a sinner_n to_o hell_n and_o none_o but_o the_o holy_a though_o not_o for_o their_o holiness_n be_v admit_v to_o life_n concern_v this_o judgement_n i_o will_v only_o add_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v not_o unlike_a that_o as_o our_o lord_n the_o judge_n shall_v visible_o as_o man_n appear_v so_o shall_v he_o vocal_o and_o audible_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n to_o the_o hear_n of_o all_o at_o least_o as_o to_o the_o main_a of_o the_o sentence_n come_v you_o and_o depart_v you_o etc._n etc._n this_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o speak_v and_o it_o be_v not_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o order_n of_o proceed_v and_o the_o intimate_v public_o of_o the_o sentence_n before_o man_n and_o angel_n agree_v to_o that_o day_n but_o very_o suitable_a to_o it_o i_o say_v as_o to_o the_o general_a sentence_n on_o the_o body_n of_o the_o elect_n and_o of_o the_o wicked_a respective_o and_o therefore_o second_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o astrict_n this_o judgement_n to_o such_o a_o long_a time_n as_o some_o do_v as_o if_o every_o one_o account_n and_o particular_a sentence_n be_v distinct_o and_o successive_o to_o be_v handle_v he_o say_v at_o once_o to_o these_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o again_o one_o sentence_n to_o these_o on_o his_o left_a together_o matth._n 25._o particular_n indeed_o be_v manifest_v which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o every_o one_o sentence_n but_o that_o may_v be_v do_v at_o a_o instant_n by_o our_o bless_a lord_n jesus_n by_o open_v the_o book_n much_o more_o than_o the_o devil_n can_v at_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n matth._n 4._o and_o luk._n 4._o show_v christ_n the_o world_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o dreadful_a sentence_n follow_v in_o the_o last_o two_o verse_n as_o it_o concern_v the_o wicked_a 1._o consider_v the_o party_n condemn_v then_o second_o the_o judgement_n or_o death_n they_o be_v adjudge_v unto_o the_o party_n sentence_v be_v ver_fw-la 14._o death_n and_o hell_n that_o be_v the_o last_o enemy_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v to_o be_v subdue_v and_o now_o general_o all_o his_o enemy_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o 1_o corinth_n 15.16_o they_o be_v all_o in_o hell_n now_o none_o in_o heaven_n the_o earth_n be_v remove_v and_o death_n and_o the_o grave_n have_v no_o power_n on_o the_o elect_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o service_n for_o they_o in_o time_n which_o now_o be_v go_v the_o wicked_a be_v in_o hell_n and_o death_n go_v with_o they_o as_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v here_o by_o this_o then_o death_n and_o hell_n be_v cast_v in_o the_o lake_n be_v not_o mean_v any_o proper_a judgement_n on_o death_n and_o hell_n or_o the_o grave_n but_o it_o hold_v out_o first_o that_o now_o all_o effect_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o curse_n as_o to_o the_o godly_a be_v remove_v and_o now_o all_o these_o go_v together_o to_o the_o pit_n with_o the_o reprobate_n and_o the_o company_n of_o the_o now-glorified_n elect_n be_v full_o free_v from_o they_o all_o as_o chap._n 22._o vers_fw-la 3._o which_o relate_v to_o this_o second_o that_o christ_n victory_n be_v complete_v when_o death_n and_o the_o grave_n that_o be_v among_o the_o last_o enemy_n be_v subdue_v and_o have_v access_n no_o long_o to_o trouble_v or_o detain_v any_o of_o his_o people_n be_v now_o confine_v within_o the_o lake_n signify_v thereby_o both_o the_o absolute_a freedom_n of_o the_o elect_a from_o they_o and_o the_o full_a dominion_n to_o say_v so_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v over_o the_o reprobate_n 2._o all_o who_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n of_o life_n they_o be_v casten_z in_o this_o lake_n all_o that_o be_v not_o elect_v in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o reprobate_n all_o that_o be_v not_o pardon_v through_o christ_n and_o by_o grace_n not_o exempt_v from_o the_o deserve_n of_o their_o work_n whether_o great_a or_o small_a rich_a or_o poor_a noble_a or_o ignoble_a old_a or_o young_a more_o civil_a or_o profane_a etc._n etc._n the_o sentence_n be_v see_v and_o may_v be_v know_v in_o the_o execution_n they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n wherein_o the_o devil_n be_v cast_v ver_fw-la 10._o this_o be_v expound_v to_o be_v the_o second_o death_n that_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v the_o general_a judgement_n when_o all_o the_o reprobate_n put_v together_o be_v send_v thither_o in_o a_o word_n all_o these_o share_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angle_n in_o hell_n fire_n where_o we_o may_v again_o see_v 1._o that_o the_o book_n of_o life_n or_o way_n of_o grace_n be_v that_o only_a which_o keep_v the_o elect_a from_o this_o damnation_n yet_o 2._o that_o other_o get_v no_o wrong_n for_o they_o deserve_v it_o only_a god_n pardon_v they_o not_o which_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o do_v 3._o that_o there_o be_v a_o good_a agreeance_n and_o connexion_n between_o election_n and_o holiness_n therefore_o they_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o none_o can_v say_v let_v i_o live_v as_o i_o will_v if_o i_o be_v elect_v i_o will_v be_v save_v god_n put_v work_n and_o this_o book_n together_o as_o the_o rule_n 1._o to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n that_o perish_v and_o to_o vindicate_v even_o his_o election_n in_o its_o execution_n from_o respect_n of_o person_n 2._o to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v yet_o grace_n that_o save_v let_v not_o therefore_o these_o two_o be_v separate_v lecture_n i._n chap._n xxi_o vers._n 1._o and_o i_o see_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n for_o the_o first_o heaven_n and_o the_o first_o earth_n be_v pass_v away_o and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o sea_n the_o last_o sentence_n be_v pass_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o the_o execution_n of_o it_o as_o to_o the_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a short_o point_v at_o follow_v now_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sentence_n as_o to_o the_o elect_n in_o this_o chapter_n and_o chap._n 22._o in_o the_o lake_n be_v casten_z all_z not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n unto_o this_o holy_a city_n be_v admit_v none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v write_v in_o it_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v two_o estate_n and_o condition_n that_o be_v oppose_v eternal_a life_n to_o eternal_a death_n of_o two_o opposite_a party_n the_o one_o include_v all_o the_o reprobate_n
filthiness_n 2._o that_o this_o filthiness_n be_v not_o easy_o washen_v away_o 3._o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a efficacy_n and_o real_a virtue_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o wash_v the_o soul_n and_o cleanse_v it_o from_o sin_n as_o if_o it_o have_v never_o sin_v as_o there_o be_v efficacy_n and_o virtue_n in_o a_o fountain_n of_o water_n to_o wash_v a_o filthy_a thing_n and_o this_o be_v typify_v in_o those_o ceremonial_a and_o legal_a wash_n under_o the_o law_n 4._o that_o that_o wherewith_o christ_n wash_v believer_n be_v his_o own_o blood_n not_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o first_o beget_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o blood_n of_o the_o true_a and_o faithful_a witness_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n yea_o the_o blood_n of_o he_o which_o be_v which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o blood_n of_o he_o who_o be_v and_o be_v god_n therefore_o act._n 20.28_o it_o be_v say_v feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n it_o hold_v out_o not_o only_o the_o efficacy_n and_o satisfactorinesse_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o the_o end_n of_o his_o death_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a testimony_n and_o witnesse-bearing_a nor_o only_o to_o leave_v a_o example_n to_o other_o as_o profane_a man_n derogate_a from_o our_o bless_a lord_n death_n affirm_v but_o to_o wash_v his_o own_o from_o their_o sin_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o justification_n and_o to_o make_v the_o power_n of_o his_o death_n come_v in_o and_o slay_v sin_n and_o to_o sanctify_v as_o it_o be_v 1_o cor._n 6._o such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o but_o now_o you_o be_v wash_v that_o be_v justify_v and_o sanctify_v there_o be_v not_o a_o name_n that_o christ_n have_v but_o it_o have_v some_o privilege_n and_o benefit_n in_o it_o to_o believer_n it_o hold_v out_o love_v on_o his_o side_n and_o consolation_n on_o we_o and_o every_o benefit_n which_o come_v to_o we_o be_v a_o name_n and_o commendation_n to_o he_o and_o may_v be_v so_o use_v by_o we_o vers._n 6._o in_o the_o description_n he_o set_v out_o how_o christ_n not_o only_o take_v away_o what_o be_v ill_a from_o we_o but_o how_o he_o abound_v in_o confer_v privilege_n on_o we_o he_o not_o only_o take_v away_o sin_n but_o he_o have_v make_v we_o king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n his_o father_n first_o king_n 1._o in_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o slavery_n of_o sin_n that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o world_n live_v in_o and_o in_o make_v we_o master_n over_o sin_n and_o sinful_a lust_n master_n over_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n and_o the_o flesh_n in_o some_o measure_n and_o this_o be_v a_o princely_a thing_n so_o the_o church_n be_v set_v out_o rev._n 12._o as_o have_v the_o moon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o transitory_a world_n under_o her_o foot_n 2._o king_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o spiritual_a reign_v in_o our_o spirit_n with_o god_n by_o a_o heavenly_a conversation_n have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n philip._n 3.20_o col._n 3.1_o in_o a_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a pride_n and_o in_o a_o sort_n of_o kingly_a majesty_n disdain_v the_o up_n and_o down_n in_o the_o world_n 3._o king_n also_o in_o title_n and_o right_a be_v set_v as_o king_n on_o the_o throne_n with_o he_o to_o execute_v the_o judgement_n write_v psal._n 149.9_o this_o honour_n have_v all_o his_o saint_n in_o a_o spiritual_a way_n and_o some_o way_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n in_o their_o practice_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v king_n in_o possession_n when_o that_o which_o be_v here_o shall_v have_v the_o full_a accomplishment_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n as_o so_o many_o crown_a king_n shall_v follow_v he_o in_o the_o cloud_n second_o priest_n to_o offer_v their_o body_n a_o live_a sacrifice_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n rom._n 12.1_o to_o offer_v prayer_n and_o praise_n the_o calf_n of_o their_o lip_n and_o this_o be_v no_o small_a privilege_n to_o have_v access_n to_o god_n as_o priest_n the_o jew_n hold_v these_o two_o as_o great_a dignity_n the_o kingly_a and_o priestly_a office_n and_o believer_n be_v call_v by_o christ_n to_o both_o so_o that_o they_o may_v come_v with_o boldness_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o enter_v within_o the_o holy_a through_o the_o veil_n by_o that_o new_a and_o live_a way_n be_v free_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n and_o fear_n which_o in_o a_o great_a part_n accompany_v the_o jew_n ceremonial_a worship_n 1._o how_o many_o excellent_a consolation_n be_v here_o to_o believer_n and_o ground_n of_o direction_n to_o they_o what_o ground_n of_o consolation_n comparable_a to_o these_o to_o be_v washen_n in_o that_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n to_o be_v make_v king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n father_n that_o be_v to_o no_o idol_n but_o to_o h●m_v to_o who_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n here_o be_v life_n and_o immortality_n bring_v to_o light_v by_o the_o gospel_n privilege_n and_o benefit_n of_o a_o exceed_a pass_a worth_n and_o excellency_n 1._o compare_v this_o verse_n with_o vers_fw-la 1._o here_o king_n and_o priest_n and_o there_o his_o servant_n observe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o royalty_n and_o dignity_n in_o the_o world_n as_o to_o be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n his_o servant_n it_o be_v true_o to_o be_v a_o king_n to_o reign_v and_o a_o priest_n to_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n it_o consist_v not_o in_o looseness_n and_o carnal_a liberty_n but_o in_o new_a obedience_n and_o the_o more_o obedient_a circumspect_a and_o strict_a in_o holiness_n the_o great_a liberty_n majesty_n and_o kingly_a stateliness_n all_o our_o lord_n servant_n be_v king_n so_o great_a a_o king_n be_v he_o and_o so_o happy_a be_v they_o 2._o these_o privilege_n lay_v a_o obligation_n on_o believer_n to_o carry_v themselves_o as_o such_o 1._o if_o christ_n blood_n be_v give_v as_o a_o fountain_n to_o wash_v at_o then_o make_v use_v of_o it_o for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n mortification_n and_o sanctification_n 2._o let_v we_o carry_v ourselves_o kingly_a it_o be_v a_o beastly_a thing_n to_o be_v a_o servant_n of_o sin_n but_o it_o be_v a_o kingly_a thing_n and_o stately_a to_o be_v mind_v the_o throne_n we_o be_v call_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o hope_n of_o to_o have_v our_o heart_n and_o conversation_n suitable_a to_o that_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a place_n to_o have_v royal_a spirit_n disdain_v and_o trample_v on_o the_o thing_n of_o a_o present_a world_n as_o unworthy_a of_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n 3._o compare_v this_o with_o the_o former_a when_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n his_o affection_n warm_v and_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o benefit_n which_o come_v by_o he_o it_o lead_v he_o to_o the_o love_n they_o come_v from_o and_o by_o that_o again_z he_o be_v lead_v to_o praise_v he_o and_o he_o can_v get_v jesus-christ_n set_v high_a enough_o observe_v believer_n heart_n shall_v warm_v and_o be_v often_o warm_v themselves_o with_o thought_n of_o christ_n and_o vent_v their_o warmness_n of_o affection_n to_o he_o in_o pra●se_n it_o be_v a_o sweet_a thing_n when_o believer_n heart_n can_v part_v with_o christ_n but_o when_o ever_o he_o come_v in_o their_o mind_n or_o mouth_n still_o to_o give_v he_o a_o word_n of_o praise_n and_o come_v to_o their_o purpose_n again_o as_o john_n do_v here_o and_o it_o be_v often_o thus_o with_o paul_n as_o 1_o tim._n 1.17_o eph._n 3.20_o lecture_n iii_o vers._n 7._o behold_v he_o come_v with_o cloud_n and_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o and_o they_o also_o which_o pierce_v he_o and_o all_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v wail_v because_o of_o he_o even_o so_o amen_n 8._o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n say_v the_o lord_n which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o almighty_a 9_o i_o john_n who_o also_o be_o your_o brother_n and_o companion_n in_o tribulation_n and_o in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o patience_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o isle_n that_o be_v call_v patmos_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ._n it_o be_v asleep_o concern_v message_n that_o christ_n be_v now_o send_v to_o his_o church_n therefore_o there_o be_v the_o large_a preface_n to_o stir_v they_o up_o he_o writ_n to_o to_o make_v that_o which_o he_o send_v welcome_a we_o hear_v from_o the_o 4._o verse_n the_o particular_a inscription_n or_o direction_n of_o this_o book_n as_o a_o epistle_n and_o when_o he_o have_v wish_v grace_n and_o peace_n and_o set_v down_o the_o partie●_n from_o who_o the_o grace_n and_o peace_n be_v wish_v and_o the_o epistle_n
a_o body_n bear_v out_o some_o resemblance_n and_o analogy_n of_o these_o qualification_n that_o be_v in_o he_o far_o beyond_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v conceive_v the_o four_o property_n or_o qualification_n be_v his_o voice_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v as_o the_o sound_n of_o many_o water_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 10._o vers_fw-la to_o be_v a_o great_a voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n here_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v like_o the_o sound_n of_o many_o water_n both_o high_a and_o great_a heard_z afar_z off_o and_o very_o terrible_a and_o dreadful_a by_o his_o voice_n in_o scripture_n be_v understand_v main_o two_o thing_n both_o which_o may_v well_o relate_v to_o this_o resemblance_n 1._o his_o effectual_a willing_a and_o command_v of_o thing_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v say_v he_o speak_v and_o it_o be_v do_v he_o command_v and_o it_o stand_v fast_o gen._n 1._o let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o it_o be_v light_a for_o christ_n as_o god_n have_v not_o a_o voice_n proper_o but_o the_o voice_n be_v that_o by_o which_o a_o man_n signify_v his_o command_n and_o will_n and_o be_v here_o attribute_v to_o christ_n as_o god_n it_o be_v to_o point_v out_o his_o effectual_a willing_a and_o bring_v that_o forth_o which_o he_o will_v have_v do_v and_o so_o point_v at_o the_o effectualness_n of_o christ_n government_n there_o be_v nothing_o call_v for_o by_o he_o but_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v nothing_o command_v but_o be_v do_v and_o that_o with_o a_o word_n 2._o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o god_n terriblenesse_n and_o majesty_n psal._n 18.13_o the_o lord_n also_o thunder_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o high_a give_v his_o voice_n hailstone_n and_o coal_n of_o fire_n in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o thunder_n because_o by_o it_o he_o manifest_v his_o power_n and_o show_v himself_o terrible_a hence_o there_o be_v so_o much_o speak_v of_o his_o voice_n psal._n 29.3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n to_o show_v not_o only_o the_o powerful_a effect_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n in_o the_o thunder_n and_o the_o way_n it_o produce_v its_o effect_n but_o the_o terriblenesse_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n who_o have_v such_o a_o voice_n that_o as_o it_o be_v hag._n 2.6_o can_v shake_v heaven_n and_o earth_n which_o be_v to_o point_v out_o his_o dreadfulness_n and_o terriblenesse_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n if_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n they_o evanish_v one_o word_n of_o this_o king_n will_v make_v the_o stout_a tyrant_n to_o quake_v as_o be_v clear_a from_o scripture_n and_o the_o story_n of_o former_a time_n a_o five_o qualification_n be_v vers_n 16._o he_o have_v in_o his_o right_a hand_n seven_o star_n the_o seven_o star_n be_v expound_v in_o the_o last_o verse_n to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o we_o forbear_v till_o we_o come_v to_o that_o only_o here_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o right_a hand_n that_o be_v power_n and_o skill_n and_o activity_n in_o exercise_v his_o power_n for_o the_o right_a hand_n be_v the_o strong_a hand_n and_o that_o by_o which_o man_n skilful_o and_o dexterous_o go_v about_o the_o bring_v to_o pass_v of_o that_o which_o they_o will_v be_v at_o he_o have_v not_o power_n and_o fury_n but_o power_n and_o skill_n and_o with_o power_n and_o skill_n he_o manage_n all_o his_o matter_n believer_n have_v not_o a_o handless_a mediator_n to_o speak_v so_o he_o have_v hand_n as_o well_o as_o foot_n but_o more_o of_o this_o in_o the_o three_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o description_n six_o he_o be_v describe_v further_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n go_v a_o two_o edge_a sword_n whereby_o be_v mean_v the_o word_n of_o god_n especial_o the_o gospel_n his_o voice_n speak_v of_o before_o be_v more_o general_a relate_v to_o his_o universal_a power_n and_o sovereignty_n over_o all_o the_o world_n this_o relate_v more_o particular_o to_o the_o write_a and_o preach_v word_n call_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n eph._n 6._o and_o sharp_a than_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n divide_v betwixt_o the_o joint_n and_o the_o marrow_n the_o soul_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v a_o discerner_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n heb._n 4._o the_o word_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o sword_n and_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o of_o the_o power_n of_o it_o it_o have_v a_o discern_a pierce_a penetrate_a power_n with_o it_o to_o come_v in_o on_o heart_n and_o to_o discover_v the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n when_o christ_n bless_v it_o and_o make_v it_o strike_v at_o the_o root_n of_o corruption_n it_o will_v humble_v the_o proud_a heart_n and_o quicken_v the_o dead_a spirit_n and_o pierce_v through_o the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n of_o the_o most_o obdure_v person_n as_o act._n 2._o peter_n preach_v do_v prick_v his_o hearer_n this_o be_v the_o save_n and_o proper_a effect_n of_o the_o word_n when_o it_o anatomize_v folk_n and_o lay_v open_v their_o thought_n their_o security_n pride_n formality_n etc._n etc._n and_o strike_v at_o the_o root_n of_o the_o body_n of_o death_n to_o kill_v it_o and_o be_v its_o death_n 2._o because_o of_o the_o effect_n it_o have_v among_o carnal_a hearer_n and_o hypocrite_n in_o which_o respect_n we_o think_v it_o be_v especial_o look_v on_o here_o as_o afterward_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o pergamos_n chap._n 2._o vers_fw-la 12.16_o i_o will_v fight_v against_o they_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o my_o mouth_n this_o sword_n when_o right_o handle_v prove_v a_o torture_n to_o the_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o world_n when_o it_o discover_v their_o rottenness_n so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o two_o faithful_a witness_n revel_v 11.10_o that_o they_o torment_v they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v so_o sharp_a in_o their_o mouth_n that_o it_o do_v hew_v hos._n 6.5_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n and_o gall_v they_o at_o the_o heart_n so_o act._n 7._o it_o be_v say_v stephen_n hearer_n be_v cut_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o gnash_v upon_o he_o with_o their_o tooth_n they_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o plainness_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o word_n accompany_v with_o power_n 3._o because_o it_o have_v a_o further_a cut_a virtue_n to_o wicked_a man_n when_o it_o prove_v through_o god_n justice_n plague_v to_o their_o heart_n and_o mind_n and_o have_v a_o instrumental_a efficacy_n for_o their_o slay_v when_o god_n draw_v out_o the_o sentence_n and_o give_v the_o word_n a_o edge_n and_o make_v it_o cut_v and_o in_o his_o justice_n to_o promove_v their_o destruction_n isa._n 11.4_o with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o lip_n he_o shall_v slay_v the_o wicked_a 1_o king_n 19.17_o he_o that_o escape_v the_o sword_n of_o jehu_n shall_v elisha_n slay_v and_o hos._n 6.5_o i_o hew_v they_o by_o my_o prophet_n and_o slay_v they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n through_o god_n pronounce_v of_o sharp_a threaten_n and_o their_o corruption_n abuse_v the_o threaten_n it_o become_v their_o death_n 2._o this_o sword_n be_v say_v to_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n to_o point_v out_o where_o from_o the_o force_n efficacy_n and_o power_n of_o the_o word_n come_v when_o it_o pierce_v it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v write_v or_o speak_v by_o man_n mouth_n but_o as_o it_o proceed_v out_o of_o christ_n mouth_n which_o make_v it_o profitable_a or_o convince_a and_o it_o be_v this_o which_o make_v sinner_n guilt_n so_o great_a and_o torment_v hypocrite_n when_o he_o add_v weight_n with_o it_o to_o thwart_v their_o corruption_n and_o they_o repine_v against_o it_o the_o last_o qualification_n be_v his_o countenance_n be_v as_o the_o sun_n shine_v in_o his_o strength_n whereby_o be_v mean_v the_o love_n that_o he_o show_v to_o his_o people_n and_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n that_o be_v in_o himself_o psal._n 4.6_o lord_n lift_v up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o we_o that_o be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o thy_o love_n and_o psal._n 80._o the_o cause_v of_o his_o face_n to_o shine_v be_v several_a time_n speak_v of_o and_o this_o favour_n and_o stately_a majesty_n in_o christ_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o sun_n shine_v not_o as_o in_o the_o morning_n nor_o at_o even_o nor_o under_o a_o cloud_n but_o in_o his_o strength_n 1._o because_o of_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n that_o be_v in_o it_o as_o chap._n 5.15_o of_o the_o song_n his_o countenance_n be_v as_o lebanon_n excellent_a as_o the_o cedar_n there_o be_v a_o excellency_n and_o beauty_n in_o it_o that_o dazzle_v and_o obscure_v all_o the_o excellency_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o world_n even_o
rise_v up_o and_o write_v thou_o be_v call_v to_o reverence_n and_o fear_v i_o but_o to_o such_o a_o fear_n as_o may_v stand_v well_o with_o thy_o duty_n and_o further_o thou_o and_o do_v not_o hinder_v thou_o in_o it_o and_o we_o will_v learn_v not_o to_o fear_v in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o work_v any_o of_o these_o effect_n obs._n 2._o when_o fear_n exceed_v degenerate_v and_o grow_v excessive_a in_o these_o three_o speak_v of_o our_o lord_n allow_v it_o no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v proud_a security_n only_o jesus_n christ_n be_v much_o more_o tender_a of_o soul_n under_o the_o one_o nor_o he_o be_v under_o the_o other_o yet_o let_v we_o not_o please_v ourselves_o in_o these_o excessive_a fit_n as_o if_o we_o be_v in_o no_o hazard_n obs._n 3_o it_o faith_n that_o folk_n will_v be_v tender_a in_o deal_v with_o soul_n under_o such_o distemper_n know_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o these_o who_o be_v under_o carnal_a presumption_n and_o other_o under_o faint_v the_o three_o step_n of_o christ_n care_n be_v in_o give_v john_n ground_n of_o consolation_n to_o warrant_n his_o faith_n and_o they_o be_v three_o the_o first_o be_v from_o his_o own_o godhead_n i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o i_o be_o god_n that_o speak_v to_o thou_o i_o be_v before_o the_o world_n and_o will_v continue_v when_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v end_v the_o eternal_a god_n a_o singular_a property_n of_o god_n and_o a_o demonstration_n of_o christ_n godhead_n therefore_o will_v he_o say_v thou_o need_v not_o fear_v john_n i_o be_o not_o a_o enemy_n nor_o a_o stranger_n or_o terrible_a spirit_n but_o god_n and_o that_o may_v sustain_v one_o in_o friendship_n with_o god_n and_o it_o be_v also_o a_o proof_n that_o the_o vision_n before_o be_v a_o vision_n of_o christ_n as_o god_n 2._o the_o second_o ground_n be_v the_o union_n of_o his_o godhead_n and_o man-head_n in_o one_o person_n and_o his_o suffering_n in_o his_o man-head_n unite_v to_o his_o godhead_n i_o be_o he_o that_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a and_o behold_v i_o be_o alive_a for_o evermore_o in_o the_o original_a it_o be_v otherwise_o and_o better_a for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o word_n i_o be_o the_o live_n and_o i_o be_v make_v dead_a and_o behold_v i_o live_v for_o evermore_o i_o be_o the_o live_n that_o be_v i_o be_o the_o live_a god_n who_o have_v life_n from_o all_o eternity_n of_o my_o self_n and_o give_v life_n to_o all_o creature_n that_o have_v life_n as_o it_o be_v joh._n 5.26_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o i_o that_o be_v and_o be_v this_o live_a god_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n be_v make_v dead_a that_o be_v i_o become_v man_n be_v make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n gal._n 4._o point_v out_o the_o true_a mediator_n god-man_n in_o one_o person_n his_o take_n on_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n in_o undergo_a the_o wrath_n of_o his_o father_n and_o in_o subject_v himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o elect_a both_o nature_n be_v join_v in_o one_o person_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o as_o god_n that_o he_o die_v though_o the_o person_n that_o be_v god_n die_v and_o behold_v i_o live_v for_o evermore_o amen_n in_o as_o far_o as_o i_o be_v once_o dead_a as_o man_n now_o i_o be_o alive_a and_o shall_v live_v for_o evermore_o and_o this_o last_o expression_n have_v two_o word_n put_v to_o it_o to_o point_v out_o its_o excellency_n 1._o behold_v i_o live_v point_v at_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o consolation_n that_o flow_v from_o it_o to_o believer_n i_o have_v overcome_v death_n and_o live_v and_o so_o i_o live_v as_o i_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o believer_n in_o i_o that_o be_v of_o special_a consolation_n to_o we_o our_o life_n be_v link_v to_o christ_n life_n who_o be_v god_n man_n and_o our_o mediator_n because_o he_o live_v we_o shall_v live_v also_o joh._n 14.19_o his_o life_n be_v a_o pledge_n and_o pawn_v of_o we_o 2._o amen_n or_o very_o a_o asseveration_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o to_o put_v all_o the_o world_n out_o of_o doubt_n of_o his_o live_n not_o only_o as_o god_n but_o as_o god_n and_o man_n in_o one_o person_n be_v assure_v you_o have_v a_o live_a christ._n the_o three_o ground_n be_v and_o i_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o death_n to_o point_v out_o his_o absolute_a sovereignty_n as_o mediator_n in_o the_o state_n of_o humiliation_n and_o exaltation_n therefore_o fear_v not_o john_n for_o i_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n and_o order_v even_o what_o concern_v they_o the_o key_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o government_n isa._n 22.21_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o eliakim_n a_o type_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v commit_v the_o government_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o then_o follow_v the_o key_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n will_v i_o lay_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n the_o meaning_n be_v i_o have_v absolute_a sovereignty_n and_o dominion_n over_o heaven_n and_o hell_n i_o deliver_v and_o carry_v to_o heaven_n who_o i_o please_v none_o go_v there_o but_o those_o who_o i_o take_v in_o and_o hell_n prevail_v not_o at_o its_o own_o will_n but_o be_v under_o my_o dominion_n for_o i_o have_v supreme_a power_n over_o hell_n and_o death_n not_o that_o christ_n dominion_n be_v limit_v to_o these_o but_o because_o hell_n and_o death_n be_v the_o two_o thing_n that_o believer_n most_o fear_v he_o tell_v that_o they_o need_v not_o fear_v they_o for_o they_o be_v both_o his_o vassal_n the_o devil_n bear_v not_o the_o key_n but_o he_o bear_v they_o himself_o these_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o consolation_n that_o be_v give_v to_o john_n and_o they_o be_v strengthen_v ground_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n to_o all_o believer_n observe_v 1._o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v god_n the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o so_o a_o true_a man_n be_v god_n he_o that_o be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v be_v god_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o against_o all_o the_o most_o cavil_v enemy_n of_o our_o lord_n deity_n he_o that_o die_v be_v and_o be_v the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o and_o the_o incommunicable_a attribute_n of_o the_o godhead_n agree_v to_o he_o 2._o this_o be_v propose_v as_o a_o ground_n of_o consolation_n to_o john_n and_o all_o believer_n and_o it_o have_v a_o world_n of_o consolation_n in_o it_o as_o 1._o not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n but_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o his_o be_v god_n yet_o he_o have_v love_v sinner_n so_o well_o that_o he_o take_v on_o man_n nature_n and_o in_o that_o nature_n die_v for_o they_o and_o that_o he_o who_o woo_v sinner_n and_o offer_v to_o marry_v they_o be_v god_n and_o yet_o be_v very_o tender_a to_o they_o and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v no_o small_a consolation_n and_o it_o show_v also_o that_o he_o be_v faithful_a and_o powerful_a to_o perform_v his_o promise_n to_o believer_n so_o there_o be_v not_o a_o design_n of_o enemy_n lay_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o day_n but_o he_o have_v a_o hand_n beyond_o it_o 2._o that_o folk_n may_v expect_v good_a of_o god_n see_v christ_n be_v god_n can_v believer_n look_v for_o hard_a deal_n from_o he_o he_o be_v absolute_a in_o his_o sovereignty_n and_o dominion_n yet_o sway_v it_o for_o the_o good_a of_o believer_n what_o will_v folk_n have_v more_o for_o a_o ground_n of_o consolation_n in_o time_n of_o confusion_n than_o this_o let_v the_o world_n go_v as_o it_o will_v our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v god_n and_o wise_o order_v all_o 3._o it_o say_v this_o that_o folk_n when_o their_o discouragement_n prevail_v as_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o mistake_v christ_n so_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o reflect_v on_o his_o godhead_n as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o faithful_a or_o powerful_a or_o wise_a or_o tender_a enough_o 4._o the_o solid_a cure_n of_o fear_n and_o faint_a be_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o christ_n as_o god_n the_o ignorance_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o be_v anxious_a impatient_a and_o dammish_v with_o faithless_a fear_n 1_o joh._n 5.4_o 5._o from_o the_o second_o ground_n i_o be_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a observe_v 1_o that_o this_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n become_v man_n else_o he_o can_v not_o have_v die_v he_o that_o be_v god_n be_v also_o true_a man_n and_o
also_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n which_o thing_n i_o hate_v 16._o repent_v or_o else_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o thou_o quick_o and_o will_v fight_v against_o they_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o my_o mouth_n 17._o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v unto_o the_o church_n to_o he_o that_o overcome_v will_v i_o give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o hide_a manna_n and_o will_v give_v he_o a_o white_a stone_n and_o in_o the_o stone_n a_o new_a name_n write_v which_o no_o man_n know_v save_v he_o that_o receive_v it_o follow_v now_o the_o three_o epistle_n direct_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o church_n of_o pergamos_n the_o estate_n of_o it_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o be_v a_o suffer_a condition_n and_o though_o have_v much_o integrity_n honesty_n and_o constancy_n under_o her_o suffering_n yet_o in_o some_o thing_n reprovable_a and_o defective_a especial_o in_o her_o zeal_n against_o false_a teacher_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o lord_n do_v here_o though_o with_o great_a tenderness_n reprove_v she_o the_o division_n of_o the_o epistle_n be_v common_a with_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o inscription_n be_v in_o the_o 12._o vers_fw-la the_o body_n of_o the_o epistle_n in_o the_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o verse_n the_o conclusion_n in_o the_o 17._o vers_fw-la the_o direction_n which_o be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o inscription_n be_v to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o pergamos_n a_o famous_a city_n in_o asia_n the_o less_o sometime_o the_o seat_n of_o king_n and_o for_o that_o present_a time_n a_o seat_n of_o the_o roman_a governor_n a_o place_n full_a of_o sin_n idolatry_n and_o cruelty_n yet_o have_v our_o lord_n a_o church_n here_o to_o which_o he_o write_v when_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o governor_n or_o of_o these_o who_o be_v most_o eminent_a which_o do_v show_v 1._o the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o ordinance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o reach_v who_o he_o please_v though_o in_o the_o most_o desperate_a condition_n 2._o it_o show_v the_o freeness_n of_o grace_n that_o condescend_v to_o gather_v a_o church_n here_o 3._o it_o show_v his_o tenderness_n to_o and_o care_n of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v gather_v to_o be_v a_o church_n unto_o himself_o beyond_o any_o other_o in_o the_o world_n the_o ittle_a he_o take_v to_o himself_o be_v he_o who_o have_v the_o sword_n with_o the_o two_o edge_n the_o sword_n with_o the_o two_o edge_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n ephes._n 6.17_o heb._n 4.12_o which_o we_o hear_v chap._n 1._o v._n 16._o do_v proceed_v out_o of_o christ_n mouth_n it_o show_v that_o christ_n have_v the_o command_n of_o the_o word_n to_o make_v it_o effectual_a for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o elect_n and_o for_o the_o convince_a smite_v wound_a and_o slay_v of_o his_o enemy_n by_o spiritual_a plague_n and_o it_o be_v choose_v in_o this_o place_n because_o he_o do_v make_v use_n of_o this_o as_o his_o sovereign_a privilege_n in_o the_o threaten_n for_o stir_v up_o the_o angel_n to_o his_o duty_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o epistle_n beside_o the_o common_a assertion_n of_o god_n omniscience_n we_o have_v first_o the_o commendation_n of_o this_o angel_n and_o church_n vers_fw-la 13._o second_o the_o reproof_n vers_fw-la 14.15_o three_o a_o exhortation_n to_o duty_n with_o a_o sharp_a threaten_v add_v as_o a_o motive_n to_o press_v the_o same_o vers_n 16._o in_o the_o commendation_n we_o have_v 1._o the_o thing_n commend_v 2._o some_o excellent_a aggravation_n to_o call_v they_o so_o or_o commend_v qualification_n of_o this_o commendation_n the_o thing_n commend_v be_v in_o two_o expression_n to_o one_o purpose_n thou_o hold_v fast_v my_o name_n and_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o faith_n by_o name_n we_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o christ_n name_n that_o be_v himself_o be_v hold_v forth_o and_o manifest_v for_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o preach_v christ_n name_n and_o to_o declare_v it_o to_o the_o gentile_n be_v all_o one_o with_o preach_v himself_o or_o his_o gospel_n by_o faith_n be_v understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o hold_v fast_o of_o his_o name_n be_v a_o zealous_a adhere_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v hold_v it_o by_o both_o hand_n and_o not_o deny_v his_o faith_n be_v a_o open_a avow_v of_o the_o same_o by_o a_o public_a profession_n and_o honour_v christ_n by_o their_o avouch_v of_o their_o faith_n in_o he_o without_o faint_v or_o shift_v in_o the_o same_o notwithstanding_o of_o any_o peril_n that_o may_v follow_v thereupon_o for_o this_o negative_a not_o deny_v his_o faith_n do_v import_v more_o than_o be_v express_v the_o commendation_n be_v amplify_v by_o two_o special_a circumstance_n that_o serve_v to_o heighten_v the_o same_o 1._o from_o the_o place_n where_o and_o 2._o from_o the_o time_n when_o they_o express_v this_o constancy_n 1._o for_o the_o place_n it_o be_v where_o satan_n throne_n be_v it_o be_v not_o much_o to_o avow_v a_o profession_n in_o some_o place_n but_o to_o do_v it_o in_o such_o a_o place_n as_o pergamos_n where_o satan_n have_v a_o seat_n or_o throne_n as_o the_o word_n be_v be_v much_o satan_n have_v a_o throne_n imply_v not_o only_o a_o sinfulness_n in_o that_o place_n common_a with_o other_o place_n but_o it_o do_v insinuate_v such_o a_o open_a avow_a opposition_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o such_o a_o adhere_n to_o satan_n that_o on_o the_o matter_n it_o look_v as_o if_o satan_n have_v command_v express_o there_o in_o chief_a for_o not_o only_o be_v wickedness_n tolerate_v but_o carry_v on_o and_o establish_v by_o a_o law_n nor_o only_a have_v he_o a_o seat_n in_o heart_n as_o he_o have_v in_o all_o man_n by_o nature_n but_o in_o the_o magistracy_n and_o judicatories_n whereby_o order_n be_v give_v in_o public_a in_o reference_n to_o persecution_n and_o profanity_n and_o man_n do_v so_o walk_v as_o if_o direct_o order_n have_v be_v give_v by_o satan_n and_o take_v from_o he_o in_o that_o place_n he_o do_v so_o effectual_o without_o control_v as_o it_o be_v obtain_v his_o will_n the_o lord_n so_o permit_v and_o order_v it_o in_o his_o wise_a and_o secret_a providence_n and_o justice_n from_o which_o 1._o we_o may_v see_v how_o tyrannous_o the_o devil_n will_v manage_v every_o thing_n if_o he_o have_v thing_n at_o his_o disposal_n 2._o at_o what_o great_a height_n he_o may_v have_v his_o dominion_n even_o beside_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v 3._o how_o full_o man_n natural_o be_v slave_n to_o the_o devil_n he_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n that_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n ephes._n 2.2_o and_o 4._o we_o may_v see_v what_o need_n there_o be_v to_o pray_v that_o christ_n kingdom_n may_v come_v and_o how_o thankful_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v who_o be_v in_o any_o measure_n free_v from_o this_o tyranny_n the_o second_o circumstance_n in_o this_o commendation_n be_v the_o time_n that_o be_v it_o be_v even_o in_o those_o day_n wherein_o antipas_n be_v my_o faithful_a martyr_n who_o be_v slay_v among_o you_o where_o satan_n dwell_v this_o be_v also_o a_o excellent_a part_n of_o the_o commendation_n that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o such_o a_o place_n that_o be_v wicked_a and_o profane_a but_o at_o such_o a_o time_n when_o wickedness_n and_o profanity_n be_v exercise_v in_o its_o height_n which_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o death_n of_o a_o faithful_a martyr_n who_o be_v then_o violent_o slay_v among_o they_o at_o such_o a_o time_n to_o hold_v fast_o his_o name_n be_v indeed_o commendable_a whereby_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n do_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o commendable_a circumstance_n of_o his_o people_n duty_n as_o he_o do_v of_o the_o aggravation_n of_o their_o sin_n what_o this_o antipas_n be_v there_o be_v no_o more_o mention_v in_o scripture_n concern_v he_o it_o be_v record_v in_o story_n that_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n in_o pergamos_n and_o it_o be_v not_o improbable_a see_v these_o be_v most_o ordinary_o the_o object_n of_o persecuter_n malice_n and_o violence_n however_o the_o lord_n put_v three_o great_a title_n upon_o he_o 1._o he_o be_v a_o martyr_n this_o signify_v a_o witness_n and_o that_o not_o only_o such_o a_o witness_n as_o witness_v by_o word_n and_o profession_n but_o as_o seal_v it_o with_o his_o blood_n thus_o paul_n speak_v of_o stephen_n act._n 22.20_o when_o the_o blood_n of_o thy_o martyr_n stephen_n be_v shed_v and_o therefore_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n martyr_n be_v distinguish_v from_o confessor_n thus_o martyr_n be_v such_o as_o suffer_v to_o death_n confessor_n be_v such_o as_o suffer_v
fear_n of_o wrath_n be_v bear_v in_o upon_o he_o yet_o in_o so_o far_o as_o he_o have_v these_o and_o entertain_v they_o he_o can_v be_v call_v a_o hypocrite_n but_o in_o so_o far_o as_o he_o bear_v down_o and_o pass_v over_o the_o same_o for_o there_o be_v a_o real_a ground_n of_o suspicion_n and_o fear_n within_o he_o etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v affect_v therewith_o be_v not_o proper_o hypocrisy_n except_o the_o same_o be_v hypocritical_o use_v that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v keep_v from_o make_v discernible_a to_o he_o the_o rottenness_n of_o his_o state_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o become_v the_o more_o vain_a because_o of_o such_o flash_n and_o seem_a exercise_n when_o yet_o they_o have_v never_o be_v suffer_v to_o come_v the_o length_n of_o any_o real_a sincerity_n 2._o we_o suppose_v that_o the_o continuance_n of_o such_o suspicion_n challenge_n and_o fear_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o state_n of_o hypocrisy_n of_o which_o we_o be_v speak_v because_o security_n and_o presumption_n to_o say_v so_o be_v essential_n to_o such_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o we_o conceive_v that_o the_o continuance_n of_o such_o challenge_n fear_n etc._n etc._n in_o any_o degree_n can_v be_v consistent_a with_o such_o a_o absolute_a security_n and_o confidence_n as_o be_v former_o speak_v to_o yet_o no_o such_o fear_n or_o exercise_n etc._n etc._n will_v be_v a_o proof_n of_o sincerity_n except_o they_o be_v right_o improven_v for_o the_o discover_n of_o a_o person_n self-inability_a and_o for_o the_o put_n of_o they_o to_o the_o market_n of_o free_a grace_n by_o which_o only_o such_o fear_n can_v be_v right_o remove_v 3._o where_o these_o fit_n of_o fear_n and_o suspicion_n be_v in_o hypocrite_n they_o proceed_v rather_o from_o some_o apprehension_n or_o sense_n of_o wrath_n as_o in_o these_o who_o despair_n concern_v their_o salvation_n then_o from_o any_o see_v or_o feel_v grossness_n of_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o themselves_o or_o from_o any_o dissatisfaction_n with_o their_o own_o faith_n or_o sincerity_n upon_o the_o distinct_a discovery_n of_o their_o own_o rottenness_n and_o hypocrisy_n in_o itself_o and_o therefore_o such_o fear_n follow_v not_o upon_o their_o search_n of_o themselves_o nor_o result_v from_o the_o discovery_n of_o their_o own_o naughtiness_n nor_o be_v willing_o entertain_v by_o they_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v some_o apprehension_n of_o wrath_n that_o waken_v they_o and_o what_o apprehension_n they_o have_v of_o their_o unsoundnesse_n be_v but_o impress_v upon_o this_o occasion_n whereas_o the_o believer_n first_o see_v and_o feel_v the_o body_n of_o death_n within_o he_o and_o then_o have_v the_o apprehension_n of_o wrath_n flow_v from_o that_o 4._o in_o their_o doubt_n and_o suspicion_n they_o be_v most_o sensible_o touch_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o end_n and_o event_n that_o be_v they_o doubt_v whether_o they_o may_v attain_v heaven_n or_o miss_v it_o and_o possible_o because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n they_o may_v draw_v such_o sentence_n sometime_o against_o themselves_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o usual_o bring_v to_o sentence_n themselves_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o own_o state_n and_o to_o judge_v themselves_o as_o lose_v and_o graceless_a for_o eyesalve_n to_o discover_v our_o nakedness_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o christ_n give_v and_o go_v alongst_o in_o one_o bargain_n with_o gold_n white_a raiment_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v think_v that_o any_o hypocrite_n can_v have_v this_o kindly_a discovery_n of_o their_o own_o nakedness_n and_o natural_a loathsomnesse_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o root_n thereof_o though_o they_o may_v have_v many_o particular_a fruit_n discover_v to_o they_o 5._o if_o a_o hypocrite_n come_v under_o any_o fit_a of_o terror_n or_o conviction_n thus_o to_o sentence_n himself_o yet_o even_o then_o it_o be_v not_o simple_a dissatisfaction_n with_o his_o own_o sinfulness_n which_o make_v he_o do_v the_o same_o but_o some_o apprehend_a terror_n of_o god_n upon_o he_o and_o therefore_o when_o that_o be_v remove_v his_o sentence_n pass_v upon_o himself_o be_v retreat_v and_o so_o in_o such_o a_o case_n a_o hypocrit_n sentence_v of_o himself_o be_v but_o his_o express_v what_o he_o apprehend_v to_o be_v god_n sentence_n upon_o he_o or_o it_o be_v his_o foretell_v of_o what_o he_o think_v come_v and_o this_o supponeth_n still_o god_n sentence_n to_o be_v pass_v in_o his_o apprehension_n which_o make_v they_o not_o so_o much_o pass_v their_o own_o sentence_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o own_o deserve_n as_o to_o express_v with_o regrate_a what_o he_o have_v pass_v already_o which_o by_o no_o mean_n they_o will_v do_v if_o they_o can_v eschew_v it_o whereas_o a_o sincere_a person_n do_v arraign_v and_o judge_v himself_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o own_o guilt_n account_v it_o just_a that_o god_n shall_v do_v so_o also_o although_o they_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o his_o deed_n as_o the_o ground_n of_o they_o as_o in_o the_o former_a case_n but_o on_o their_o own_o guiltiness_n without_o respect_n thereto_o 5._o it_o may_v be_v ask_v how_o a_o minister_n may_v discern_v a_o lukewarm_a temper_n among_o the_o people_n over_o who_o he_o have_v charge_n answ._n although_o peremptory_a decision_n of_o such_o a_o person_n state_n who_o have_v a_o form_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o minister_n nor_o other_o be_v not_o to_o take_v on_o they_o yet_o consider_v that_o such_o a_o case_n be_v often_o most_o frequent_a and_o that_o it_o be_v of_o most_o weighty_a concernment_n for_o a_o minister_n to_o discern_v the_o same_o also_o that_o where_o it_o be_v common_a it_o be_v ordinary_o one_o way_n or_o other_o so_o far_o discernible_a as_o be_v fit_a to_o a_o search_a discern_a eye_n we_o may_v offer_v from_o these_o word_n such_o character_n thereof_o as_o may_v help_v a_o minister_n in_o apply_v of_o himself_o suitable_o at_o least_o to_o their_o present_a frame_n 1._o such_o a_o lukewarm_a temper_n have_v much_o more_o light_a than_o life_n and_o much_o more_o delight_n in_o speculative_a knowledge_n and_o in_o such_o preach_n as_o bring_v some_o new_a thing_n to_o that_o than_o they_o have_v in_o what_o real_o feed_v the_o soul_n and_o tend_v to_o search_v the_o conscience_n or_o awaken_v any_o spiritual_a exercise_n therein_o 2._o such_o a_o people_n have_v ordinary_o a_o heal_n and_o unbroken_a condition_n without_o fear_n exercise_n or_o doubt_n and_o so_o according_o there_o will_v be_v little_a of_o such_o subject_n the_o matter_n of_o discourse_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o minister_n yea_o if_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v move_v either_o they_o will_v suffer_v it_o to_o die_v out_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o or_o delight_v in_o or_o so_o entertain_v it_o with_o some_o such_o general_a expression_n as_o rather_o show_v their_o desire_n not_o to_o be_v think_v ignorant_a than_o any_o way_n to_o express_v their_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o 3._o much_o of_o their_o discourse_n of_o religion_n will_v ready_o be_v to_o their_o own_o commendation_n even_o when_o they_o seem_v with_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi luk._n 18._o to_o thank_v god_n they_o be_v not_o as_o other_o man_n and_o so_o still_o there_o be_v some_o expression_n of_o their_o satisfaction_n with_o their_o own_o condition_n that_o be_v discernible_a in_o the_o whole_a strain_n of_o their_o discourse_n and_o way_n what_o ever_o acknowledgement_n may_v be_v intermix_v 4._o it_o be_v discernible_a by_o pride_n self-esteem_a vain_a confidence_n etc._n etc._n that_o do_v accompany_v such_o which_o for_o a_o continuance_n of_o time_n together_o can_v hardly_o be_v hide_v to_o a_o search_a minister_n for_o this_o do_v not_o only_o kith_v negative_o in_o their_o want_n of_o spiritual_a exercise_n and_o such_o like_a but_o it_o will_v even_o often_o kith_v positive_o by_o their_o censure_v of_o other_o when_o they_o fall_v by_o their_o assert_v their_o own_o sincerity_n and_o the_o clearness_n and_o confidence_n that_o they_o have_v of_o their_o own_o good_a condition_n and_o by_o their_o look_v upon_o all_o thing_n which_o may_v touch_v at_o their_o sore_n as_o not_o belong_v to_o they_o and_o as_o if_o they_o be_v above_o and_o without_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o such_o ground_n of_o doubt_v 5._o such_o love_n rather_o to_o have_v the_o esteem_n and_o familiar_a acquaintance_n of_o their_o minister_n than_o to_o have_v profit_n by_o his_o ministry_n hence_o they_o will_v be_v short_a in_o no_o civil_a courtesy_n will_v be_v desirous_a of_o have_v the_o minister_n frequent_o with_o they_o and_o that_o he_o may_v love_v they_o and_o ready_o complain_v if_o he_o humour_v they_o not_o in_o that_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v many_o night_n in_o their_o company_n and_o find_v it_o hard_o to_o edify_v much_o or_o discover_v any_o great_a greediness_n in_o they_o to_o take_v
iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o and_o in_o his_o counsel_n and_o decree_n do_v appoint_v he_o who_o know_v no_o sin_n to_o become_v sin_n for_o other_o and_o thereby_o as_o a_o cautioner_n to_o be_v liable_a to_o their_o debt_n three_o this_o also_o be_v intend_v that_o the_o mediator_n in_o his_o accept_n of_o the_o offer_n and_o in_o lay_v down_o of_o his_o life_n do_v purposely_o intend_v thus_o to_o satisfy_v for_o when_o sacrifice_n and_o burnt-offering_n etc._n etc._n can_v not_o please_v god_n nor_o satisfy_v he_o in_o this_o respect_n then_o do_v the_o son_n willing_o undertake_v with_o delight_n to_o do_v god_n will_v as_o it_o be_v psal._n 40.6_o 7_o etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v on_o this_o ground_n that_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o cautioner_n heb._n 7.22_o because_o he_o undertake_v the_o satisfy_n for_o our_o debt_n and_o upon_o this_o ground_n be_v there_o access_n in_o justice_n to_o exact_v it_o of_o he_o though_o he_o himself_o know_v no_o sin_n for_o which_o see_v is●_n 53.7_o and_o 10._o ●_o c●rinth_n 5.21_o in_o the_o four_o place_n this_o be_v include_v that_o by_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n the_o offend_a party_n this_o death_n and_o willing_a suffering_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n jesus_n be_v actual_o accept_v as_o satisfactory_a and_o well-pleasing_a to_o he_o in_o the_o room_n and_o stead_n of_o these_o who_o have_v offend_v so_o that_o thereby_o he_o in_o the_o order_n agree_v upon_o do_v lay_v by_o quarrel_n at_o the_o offend_a party_n as_o man_n do_v discharge_v the_o principal_a creditor_n the_o debt_n when_o the_o cautioner_n have_v satisfy_v in_o his_o name_n hence_o the_o lord_n pronounce_v often_o that_o in_o his_o belove_a son_n he_o be_v well_o please_v and_o that_o he_o have_v find_v a_o ransom_n job_n 33._o vers_fw-la 24._o and_o from_o this_o it_o be_v that_o his_o death_n be_v call_v a_o propitiation_n as_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n when_o other_o sacrifice_n can_v not_o be_v that_o in_o these_o respect_n christ_n death_n be_v true_o a_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n may_v from_o this_o text_n thus_o be_v make_v out_o first_o if_o by_o christ_n death_n we_o be_v redeem_v and_o if_o the_o effect_n flow_v from_o his_o death_n be_v a_o redemption_n then_o be_v his_o death_n under_o which_o all_o his_o suffering_n be_v comprehend_v a_o proper_a price_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o double_a strength_n in_o this_o argument_n to_o make_v out_o the_o connexion_n first_o in_o the_o word_n redemption_n which_o as_o we_o show_v in_o the_o exposition_n beside_o other_o thing_n do_v imply_v 1._o that_o sinner_n by_o sin_n be_v sell_v and_o mortgaged_n and_o the_o law_n and_o curse_n have_v obtain_v a_o right_a over_o they_o 2._o that_o at_o least_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o establish_a law_n and_o curse_n that_o day_n thou_o eat_v thou_o shall_v die_v there_o be_v no_o dissolve_v of_o that_o right_n but_o by_o some_o interveen_a satisfaction_n otherwise_o the_o lord_n who_o pronounce_v it_o may_v be_v think_v not_o to_o be_v just_a and_o true_a in_o his_o threaten_n 3._o this_o be_v employ_v that_o when_o man_n and_o creature_n can_v give_v no_o price_n our_o lord_n jesus_n do_v actual_o undertake_v and_o according_o do_v pay_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o redemption_n because_o it_o be_v a_o freedom_n that_o be_v buy_v and_o he_o be_v a_o redeemer_n because_o he_o do_v buy_v it_o and_o satisfy_v for_o it_o and_o this_o expression_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n will_v infer_v no_o less_o as_o be_v say_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v in_o this_o that_o this_o redemption_n be_v attribute_v to_o his_o death_n and_o blood_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o by_o thy_o blood_n and_o these_o put_v together_o make_v it_o exceed_v strong_a for_o the_o very_a price_n of_o the_o redemption_n be_v thereby_o clear_o hold_v forth_o so_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v why_o be_v christ_n call_v a_o redeemer_n answ._n because_o he_o redeem_v we_o if_o again_o it_o be_v say_v wherewith_o do_v he_o redeem_v we_o or_o with_o what_o price_n it_o be_v answer_v with_o his_o blood_n and_o indeed_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o reason_n why_o so_o frequent_o our_o redemption_n be_v attribute_v to_o his_o death_n but_o because_o his_o death_n cometh-in_a in_o a_o peculiar_a respect_n thereunto_o so_o that_o when_o we_o as_o once_o isaac_n be_v to_o his_o father_n be_v lie_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o stroke_n of_o god_n justice_n he_o offer_v himself_o in_o our_o room_n as_o there_o be_v a_o ram_n provide_v in_o the_o place_n of_o isaac_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v escape_v as_o it_o be_v 2_o cor._n 5.21_o gal._n 3.13_o 14._o he_o redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n be_v himself_o make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o which_o must_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v in_o our_o stead_n second_o which_o be_v almost_o one_o with_o the_o last_o branch_n of_o the_o former_a it_o be_v clear_a by_o this_o that_o all_o the_o good_a that_o come_v to_o the_o redeem_v be_v still_o reckon_v as_o the_o effect_n and_o purchase_v of_o christ_n suffering_n which_o must_v respect_v the_o merit_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o blood_n as_o by_o way_n of_o satisfaction_n procure_v the_o same_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v say_v singular_o of_o the_o mediator_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n that_o he_o have_v procure_v this_o redemption_n otherwise_o than_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o first_o and_o three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n therefore_o also_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v love_v by_o he_o and_o washen_v by_o his_o own_o blood_n chap._n 1.5_o but_o of_o this_o argument_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o former_a three_o this_o be_v bring_v as_o the_o song_n of_o all_o the_o redeem_v and_o as_o that_o which_o will_v agree_v to_o all_o of_o they_o when_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o first-born_a shall_v be_v bring_v together_o now_o what_o other_o influence_n can_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v upon_o these_o who_o be_v redeem_v by_o he_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o before_o his_o death_n when_o the_o example_n thereof_o can_v have_v no_o effect_n or_o upon_o young_a one_o upon_o who_o his_o suffering_n can_v have_v no_o moral_a influence_n by_o open_v or_o confirm_v to_o they_o doctrinal_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o yet_o both_o these_o may_v well_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o efficacy_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v consider_v as_o a_o satisfaction_n now_o consider_v that_o all_o the_o redeem_v be_v equal_o and_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n oblige_v to_o christ_n death_n for_o their_o life_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n do_v joint_o concur_v in_o the_o same_o song_n of_o praise_n we_o must_v either_o say_v that_o none_o such_o as_o have_v be_v former_o instance_a be_v save_v or_o we_o must_v say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o save_v without_o any_o respect_n to_o his_o suffering_n both_o which_o be_v false_a and_o absurd_a or_o last_o we_o must_v acquiesce_v in_o this_o that_o by_o christ_n suffering_n as_o by_o a_o satisfaction_n this_o be_v procure_v to_o they_o and_o therefore_o consequent_o that_o his_o death_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v as_o such_o see_v no_o otherwise_o it_o can_v have_v influence_n on_o their_o redemption_n and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o redemption_n and_o one_o way_n by_o which_o it_o be_v procure_v to_o wit_n christ_n death_n and_o one_o song_n comprehend_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o all_o the_o redeem_v and_o see_v to_o some_o it_o must_v be_v a_o satisfaction_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v esteem_v to_o be_v so_o in_o reference_n to_o all_o other_o also_o who_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v partaker_n thereof_o four_o this_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n to_o wit_n redemption_n be_v peculiar_a to_o some_o of_o all_o kindred_n and_o nation_n and_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o it_o must_v therefore_o be_v consider_v as_o flow_v from_o his_o death_n as_o a_o satisfaction_n meritorious_o procure_v the_o same_o otherwise_o these_o effect_n which_o may_v follow_v upon_o his_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n by_o his_o death_n give_v a_o example_n to_o other_o &c_n &c_n be_v common_a indifferent_o to_o all_o that_o be_v bearer_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o in_o these_o respect_v he_o be_v so_o and_o do_v so_o to_o all_o this_o therefore_o be_v peculiar_a to_o some_o as_o the_o next_o doctrine_n will_v further_o clear_v must_v be_v understand_v as_o qualify_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n to_o be_v for_o the_o satisfy_n in_o the_o room_n of_o such_o and_o such_o and_o not_o of_o other_o which_o consideration_n do_v plain_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o satisfaction_n five_o there_o be_v a_o special_a emphasis_n and_o
significancy_n in_o this_o that_o thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o by_o thy_o blood_n etc._n etc._n which_o do_v respect_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o person_n who_o do_v l●y_o down_o his_o blood_n for_o make_v of_o this_o purchase_n it_o be_v thou_o who_o be_v the_o first_o and_o last_o who_o be_v dead_a and_o be_v alive_a and_o live_v for_o ever_o who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yea_o who_o be_v god_n act._n 20.28_o a●_n be_v more_o full_o clear_v chap._n 1.4_o for_o thou_o and_o th●_n relate_v to_o the_o person_n describe_v by_o such_o title_n in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o prophecy_n this_o do_v give_v ground_n for_o this_o argument_n if_o the_o purchase_n make_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v such_o as_o can_v be_v make_v by_o none_o but_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o he_o who_o be_v and_o be_v god_n then_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n for_o that_o end_n must_v be_v a_o satisfaction_n and_o by_o their_o merit_n and_o efficacy_n procure_v the_o redemption_n purchase_v but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v because_o first_o all_o the_o other_o end_n of_o suffer_v may_v be_v in_o the_o suffering_n of_o a_o mere_a man_n second_o there_o be_v not_o need_v of_o such_o a_o excellent_a price_n if_o the_o merit_n and_o worth_n thereof_o do_v not_o concur_v by_o way_n of_o satisfaction_n for_o obtain_v of_o this_o redemption_n three_o this_o respect_n to_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o person_n show_v wherefrom_a main_o their_o redemption_n do_v flow_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o person_n die_v be_v of_o such_o worth_n and_o that_o therefore_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n be_v account_v of_o great_a price_n before_o god_n and_o last_o th●re_o be_v here_o a_o clear_a opposition_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o by_o thy_o blood_n tha●_n be_v thou_o who_o be_v god_n have_v condescend_v to_o lay_v down_o thy_o life_n and_o sh●d_v thy_o blood_n for_o we_o who_o be_v of_o little_a worth_n which_o do_v import_v that_o his_o suffering_n be_v estimate_v in_o the_o stead_n of_o what_o shall_v have_v be_v other_o way_n exact_v from_o they_o these_o argument_n will_v be_v the_o more_o clear_a if_o we_o consider_v that_o opposition_n which_o i●_n make_v by_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 5._o betwixt_o our_o bless_a lord_n jesus_n the_o second_o adam_n and_o the_o first_o adam_n of_o who_o man_n have_v their_o sinful_a be_v for_o in_o that_o comparison_n and_o opposition_n christ_n be_v not_o only_o make_v the_o author_n of_o life_n to_o these_o that_o be_v by_o faith_n his_o seed_n as_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v the_o author_n of_o death_n to_o these_o that_o descend_v from_o he_o but_o also_o and_o especial_o in_o this_o that_o as_o by_o the_o disobedience_n and_o transgression_n of_o adam_n death_n be_v bring_v upon_o his_o posterity_n as_o be_v procure_v by_o the_o guilt_n and_o demerit_n to_o speak_v so_o of_o that_o offence_n so_o by_o the_o obedience_n righteousness_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o other_o life_n and_o freedom_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n be_v purchase_v and_o that_o by_o way_n of_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n equivalent_a to_o the_o former_a offence_n for_o as_o by_o adam_n fall_n the_o holiness_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v wrong_v so_o by_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n they_o be_v wonderful_o make_v to_o shine_v and_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n scope_n to_o compare_v these_o two_o adam_n together_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o opposite_a effect_n that_o flow_v from_o they_o to_o their_o seed_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o opposite_a mean_n by_o which_o these_o be_v procure_v this_o which_o be_v assert_v must_v necessary_o follow_v it_o be_v also_o observable_a and_o do_v exceed_o confirm_v the_o truth_n la●d_v down_o and_o discover_v the_o horridnesse_n of_o the_o opposite_a blasphemy_n that_o the_o deny_v of_o chri●ts_n death_n to_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n and_o the_o deny_v of_o his_o bless_a godhead_n be_v so_o knit_v together_o that_o the_o assert_v of_o the_o one_o do_v infer_v the_o other_o therefore_o these_o wretched_a s●cinians_n who_o deny_v the_o eternal_a godhead_n and_o the_o personality_n of_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n must_v also_o deny_v the_o merit_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o obedience_n in_o his_o death_n without_o which_o it_o can_v not_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o redeem_v who_o have_v the_o right_a thought_n of_o christ_n godhead_n have_v also_o this_o impression_n of_o his_o death_n that_o it_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n lay_v down_o in_o their_o name_n upon_o both_o which_o ground_n they_o praise_v in_o this_o song_n to_o wit_n that_o so_o excellent_a a_o person_n shall_v redeem_v they_o by_o so_o excellent_a a_o price_n as_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n and_o this_o do_v demonstrate_v their_o engagement_n to_o he_o that_o when_o upon_o supposition_n of_o the_o threaten_a curse_n at_o least_o there_o be_v no_o other_o that_o can_v undertake_v their_o debt_n or_o satisfy_v for_o they_o but_o he_o who_o be_v god_n that_o even_o then_o he_o who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v undertake_v the_o same_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o all_o who_o ever_o shall_v share_v in_o this_o song_n shall_v acknowledge_v both_o these_o truth_n and_o hearty_o bless_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o make_v satisfaction_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o consider_v that_o the_o abettor_n of_o this_o blasphemy_n do_v by_o this_o deny_v the_o godhead_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n person_n and_o altogether_o make_v void_a the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n and_o priestly_a office_n so_o that_o neither_o his_o person_n nor_o his_o office_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o they_o which_o yet_o be_v the_o two_o great_a and_o solid_a foundation_n of_o christianity_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v dispute_v with_o nor_o account_v christian_n but_o rather_o to_o be_v join_v with_o and_o reckon_v among_o heathen_n or_o the_o follower_n of_o mahomet_n and_o the_o receiver_n of_o his_o koran_n for_o which_o cause_n christian_n will_v guard_v against_o this_o most_o horrid_a error_n as_o be_v most_o blasphemous_a against_o the_o mediator_n and_o most_o destructive_a to_o their_o own_o salvation_n for_o by_o these_o ground_n they_o can_v neither_o have_v a_o redeemer_n nor_o a_o redemption_n it_o be_v report_v of_o socinus_n the_o great_a patron_n of_o this_o blasphemy_n by_o a_o learned_a man_n to_o wit_n cameron_n who_o write_v that_o he_o have_v it_o from_o one_o of_o his_o disciple_n that_o he_o private_o deny_v the_o world_n to_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o lest_o thereby_o he_o shall_v be_v necessitate_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o infiniteness_n of_o god_n power_n which_o afterward_o be_v more_o public_o avow_v and_o contended-for_a by_o some_o of_o his_o follower_n what_o horrible_a thing_n be_v there_o that_o man_n corruption_n will_v not_o conceive_v and_o foster_v and_o what_o hieght_n or_o depth_n will_v not_o the_o devil_n drive_v man_n to_o where_o he_o get_v liberty_n these_o thing_n have_v ever_o be_v abhor_v as_o most_o detestable_a even_o as_o to_o the_o very_o mention_v of_o they_o yet_o this_o horrid_a blasphemy_n want_v not_o its_o patron_n in_o this_o spring-time_n of_o error_n and_o therefore_o man_n ought_v to_o walk_v the_o more_o circumspect_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o same_o concern_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n or_o if_o it_o may_v be_v account_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o all_o man_n the_o second_o doctrine_n that_o we_o propose_v from_o the_o word_n be_v that_o though_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n be_v proper_o a_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o sin_n yet_o be_v not_o this_o intend_a by_o christ_n nor_o accept_v of_o by_o god_n as_o a_o price_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n and_o for_o the_o procure_n of_o redemption_n to_o they_o but_o only_o for_o some_o peculiar_o choose_v of_o god_n and_o by_o his_o decree_n of_o election_n separate_v from_o other_o it_o be_v true_a that_o chr●sts_n death_n be_v consider_v abstract_o and_o material_o in_o itself_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n who_o die_v and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o perform_v this_o obedience_n with_o so_o much_o cheerfulness_n reverence_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v and_o by_o divine_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_a value_n so_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o intend_v and_o transact_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n it_o may_v have_v be_v in_o the_o former_a respect_n account_v and_o accept_v as_o a_o price_n for_o many_o more_o yea_o for_o all_o because_o such_o suffering_n perform_v by_o such_o a_o person_n be_v equivalent_a unto_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o excellency_n who_o suffer_v beyond_o
say_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v only_o mention_v one_o kind_n of_o propose_v and_o give_v to_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o be_v give_v absolute_o to_o he_o to_o be_v redeem_v and_o the_o opposition_n betwixt_o this_o give_v of_o some_o to_o christ_n and_o the_o not_o give_v of_o other_o be_v not_o as_o if_o it_o be_v betwixt_o two_o giving_n of_o diverse_a kind_n to_o wit_n one_o conditional_a and_o another_o absolute_a but_o it_o be_v such_o a_o opposition_n as_o be_v betwixt_o give_v and_o not_o give_v or_o pass_v by_o and_o therefore_o that_o former_a twofold_n give_v or_o propose_v to_o christ_n can_v be_v admit_v 3._o we_o say_v if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o conditional_a propose_v of_o the_o reprobate_n to_o christ_n to_o be_v redeem_v it_o will_v not_o be_v easy_a to_o conceive_v the_o term_n of_o the_o covenant_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o covenant_n mention_v wherein_o to_o say_v so_o the_o bargain_n with_o the_o mediator_n be_v conclude_v this_o will_v infer_v two_o to_o wit_n one_o absolute_a in_o reference_n to_o the_o elect_n a_o other_o conditional_a in_o reference_n to_o the_o reprobate_n again_o it_o will_v be_v difficult_a to_o determine_v whether_o christ_n be_v to_o pay_v so_o much_o for_o they_o as_o for_o the_o elect_n for_o it_o seem_v not_o just_a that_o he_o shall_v pay_v as_o much_o for_o these_o who_o be_v but_o conditional_o redeem_v and_o for_o who_o he_o do_v not_o purchase_v the_o condition_n and_o who_o he_o have_v not_o intend_v to_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o benefit_n as_o for_o these_o who_o be_v absolute_o redeem_v to_o who_o the_o condition_n be_v purchase_v and_o for_o who_o the_o benefit_n be_v intend_v on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o will_v be_v difficult_a to_o say_v that_o a_o less_o price_n be_v require_v for_o this_o conditional_a redemption_n because_o so_o it_o be_v no_o redemption_n at_o all_o for_o if_o the_o redemption_n must_v be_v at_o such_o a_o price_n than_o what_o be_v less_o can_v procure_v the_o same_o further_o there_o be_v but_o one_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o elect_n or_o these_o who_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n and_o propose_v to_o he_o be_v still_o mention_v as_o the_o object_n about_o which_o that_o bargain_n be_v transact_v we_o can_v therefore_o think_v of_o a_o conditional_a proposal_n except_o we_o can_v see_v a_o distinct_a bargain_n and_o covenant_n concern_v the_o same_o which_o yet_o will_v be_v no_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n but_o we_o may_v touch_v this_o afterward_o second_o that_o all_o be_v not_o propose_v to_o christ_n or_o give_v to_o he_o will_v thus_o appear_v because_o by_o these_o title_n to_o wit_n these_o that_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o etc._n etc._n such_o be_v contradistinguish_v from_o other_o as_o from_o these_o who_o be_v not_o give_v to_o christ_n neither_o can_v there_o be_v any_o other_o reason_n why_o these_o be_v design_v by_o such_o a_o name_n but_o that_o in_o god_n purpose_n they_o be_v design_v peculiarly_a to_o be_v redeem_v and_o according_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o mediator_n and_o undertaken-for_a by_o he_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n now_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o any_o other_o be_v propose_v by_o god_n to_o the_o mediator_n but_o such_o as_o be_v thus_o give_v to_o he_o and_o see_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o all_o be_v not_o thus_o give_v to_o he_o for_o such_o be_v express_o distinguish_v from_o the_o passed-by_a world_n joh._n 6.17_o therefore_o all_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v propose_v by_o god_n to_o the_o mediator_n and_o so_o consequent_o which_o be_v the_o conlusion_n of_o the_o main_a argument_n his_o suffering_n and_o death_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v intend_v as_o a_o price_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o redeem_n of_o all_o and_o every_o one_o nor_o without_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o bless_a party_n contract_v can_v they_o be_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o price_n for_o any_o for_o the_o price_n must_v needs_o relate_v to_o what_o be_v propose_v to_o be_v redeem_v or_o buy_v this_o be_v the_o series_n the_o mediator_n do_v redeem_v these_o for_o who_o he_o engage_v and_o who_o debt_n he_o do_v undertake_v again_o he_o do_v undertake_v for_o these_o and_o for_o these_o only_a who_o be_v propose_v and_o give_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o he_o for_o that_o end_n but_o these_o be_v not_o all_o man_n but_o some_o few_o that_o be_v peculiar_o give_v to_o he_o as_o separate_v from_o other_o therefore_o from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o not_o all_o man_n but_o some_o few_o peculiar_o choose_v by_o god_n and_o give_v to_o christ_n be_v redeem_v by_o his_o death_n and_o have_v these_o suffering_n intend_v by_o the_o mediator_n and_o accepted-of_a by_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n as_o a_o price_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n arg._n 2._o second_o it_o may_v be_v thus_o conclude_v if_o these_o that_o be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n blood_n be_v not_o all_o of_o every_o tongue_n kindred_n and_o nation_n but_o some_o out_o of_o every_o tongue_n kindred_n and_o nation_n etc._n etc._n then_o all_o be_v not_o redeem_v for_o these_o be_v opposite_a in_o this_o respect_n to_o wit_n a_o whole_a nation_n or_o every_o person_n of_o a_o nation_n and_o some_o of_o they_o only_o but_o the_o redeem_v be_v not_o all_o of_o every_o nation_n etc._n etc._n but_o some_o out_o of_o all_o tongue_n kindred_n and_o nation_n etc._n etc._n as_o be_v clear_v vers_fw-la 9_o therefore_o all_o be_v not_o redemeed_o and_o what_o can_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o expression_n here_o thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o every_o tongue_n kindred_n etc._n etc._n if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o distinguish_v these_o few_o redeem_v one_o of_o these_o nation_n from_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o unredeemed_a in_o the_o same_o and_o thereby_o to_o set_v out_o the_o peculiaritie_n of_o god_n love_n to_o they_o who_o he_o redeem_v who_o have_v design_v this_o benefit_n to_o they_o when_o he_o have_v pass_v by_o other_o to_o who_o he_o be_v no_o less_o oblige_v or_o rather_o to_o who_o he_o be_v no_o more_o disoblige_v in_o respect_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o man_n also_o by_o this_o expression_n there_o be_v a_o clear_a difference_n put_v between_o the_o song_n of_o the_o redeem_v which_o be_v ground_v upon_o christ_n death_n and_o the_o song_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n which_o do_v arise_v from_o a_o visible_a church-relation_n for_o chap._n 11.17_o 18_o etc._n etc._n the_o whole_a nation_n become_v the_o lord_n in_o that_o respect_n and_o they_o praise_v he_o upon_o that_o ground_n but_o the_o song_n of_o the_o redeem_v be_v of_o some_o out_o of_o every_o tongue_n kindred_n and_o nation_n etc._n etc._n which_o do_v express_o insinuate_v that_o redemption_n by_o christ_n blood_n be_v not_o of_o equal_a extent_n with_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o elect_a therein_o and_o therefore_o much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v of_o equal_a extent_n with_o the_o whole_a world_n three_o if_o this_o redemption_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o lay_v down_o of_o his_o life_n for_o any_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o his_o most_o special_a and_o peculiar_a love_n than_o it_o can_v be_v extend_v to_o all_o because_o his_o peculiar_a love_n do_v not_o extend_v itself_o to_o all_o indifferent_o for_o if_o so_o than_o it_o will_v not_o be_v peculiar_a but_o common_a and_o therefore_o the_o effect_n thereof_o can_v be_v of_o more_o general_a extent_n but_o the_o former_a be_v clear_a in_o this_o place_n to_o wit_n that_o redemption_n by_o christ_n death_n be_v a_o fruit_n and_o evidence_n of_o his_o most_o peculiar_a love_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n that_o this_o be_v a_o special_a and_o peculiar_a favour_n appear_v first_o from_o their_o be_v so_o affect_v in_o this_o song_n as_o have_v this_o mercy_n peculiarly_a to_o praise_v he_o for_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o have_v redeem_v they_o by_o his_o blood_n which_o other_o have_v not_o and_o second_o that_o they_o mention_v this_o as_o a_o favour_n beyond_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a and_o which_o do_v singular_o engage_v they_o to_o he_o beyond_o all_o other_o favour_n that_o have_v be_v bestow_v upon_o they_o three_o the_o very_a expression_n of_o their_o song_n bear_v forth_o their_o sense_n of_o the_o peculiarnesse_n of_o this_o mercy_n as_o thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o every_o tongue_n kindred_n and_o nation_n that_o show_v his_o take_a notice_n of_o they_o singular_o beyond_o other_o and_o that_o he_o do_v this_o by_o his_o blood_n show_v this_o to_o be_v a_o express_v of_o his_o love_n to_o they_o in_o a_o most_o wonderful_a and_o singular_a manner_n four_o if_o this_o mercy_n be_v not_o peculiar_a to_o they_o than_o it_o may_v be_v
last_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o connexion_n between_o christ_n die_v for_o any_o and_o their_o obtain_n of_o actual_a justification_n and_o salvation_n may_v thus_o be_v make_v out_o if_o the_o lord_n bestow_v the_o great_a benefit_n upon_o any_o then_o the_o lesser_a can_v but_o be_v expect_v from_o he_o also_o but_o the_o give_v of_o his_o son_n to_o death_n for_o any_o be_v a_o great_a mercy_n than_o actual_a justification_n and_o salvation_n therefore_o he_o can_v but_o bestow_v the_o last_o on_o these_o upon_o who_o he_o have_v bestow_v the_o first_o both_o part_n of_o the_o argument_n will_v be_v confirm_v from_o rom._n 5._o 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 32._o in_o the_o one_o place_n the_o apostle_n reason_v thus_o while_o we_o be_v yet_o sinner_n god_n commend_v his_o love_n to_o we_o in_o give_v christ_n to_o die_v for_o we_o therefore_o have_v obtain_v such_o a_o mercy_n we_o may_v much_o more_o look_v to_o be_v save_v from_o wrath_n through_o he_o and_o to_o deny_v the_o consequence_n in_o the_o former_a argument_n will_v enervat_fw-la this_o reason_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o other_o place_n it_o be_v he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o wish_v he_o also_o free_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n where_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o show_v that_o all_o thing_n do_v follow_v where_o christ_n be_v bestow_v but_o also_o he_o do_v it_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o do_v show_v the_o absurdity_n and_o unreasonableness_n of_o think_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o can_v be_v possible_a that_o god_n will_v bestow_v so_o excellent_a a_o gift_n as_o his_o son_n to_o be_v deliver_v up_o for_o any_o and_o yet_o withhold_v any_o good_a thing_n from_o such_o a_o second_o way_n by_o which_o we_o may_v conceive_v the_o force_n of_o the_o former_a argument_n be_v this_o which_o also_o be_v a_o new_a argument_n of_o itself_o that_o which_o will_v weaken_v the_o redeemed_n consolation_n and_o enervat_fw-la the_o ground_n of_o their_o praise_n contrary_a to_o the_o strain_n and_o scope_n of_o this_o song_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o redemption_n but_o to_o say_v that_o all_o be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n death_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v justify_v nor_o partake_v of_o life_n through_o he_o etc._n etc._n do_v exceed_o weaken_v the_o redeemed_n consolation_n and_o enervat_fw-la the_o ground_n of_o their_o praise_n contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o song_n therefore_o that_o doctrine_n of_o universal_a redemption_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v as_o be_v derogatory_n to_o the_o solid_a consolation_n of_o the_o redeem_v what_o ever_o be_v pretend_v that_o it_o derogate_v to_o their_o consolation_n appear_v thus_o if_o the_o justification_n salvation_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o redeem_v be_v not_o necessary_o and_o peremptory_o knit_v unto_o christ_n lay_v down_o of_o his_o life_n for_o they_o then_o be_v even_o their_o justification_n and_o salvation_n uncertain_a and_o so_o none_o of_o they_o can_v hearty_o praise_v for_o the_o same_o or_o comfort_v themselves_o therein_o much_o less_o can_v all_o do_v this_o both_o which_o be_v express_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n and_o scope_n of_o this_o song_n again_o if_o no_o redeem_a person_n believer_n or_o child_n of_o god_n can_v so_o comfort_v themselves_o by_o draw_v conclusion_n from_o this_o doctrine_n christ_n have_v die_v for_o all_o yet_o all_o shall_v not_o be_v save_v as_o they_o may_v be_v comfort_v and_o have_v their_o heart_n cheer_v to_o praise_n from_o this_o that_o christ_n have_v not_o redeem_v all_o nor_o have_v die_v for_o they_o yet_o all_o for_o who_o he_o die_v and_o who_o he_o redeem_v shall_v be_v justify_v and_o save_v then_o must_v the_o former_a doctrine_n be_v exceed_o derogatory_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n their_o consolation_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o such_o a_o universal_a redemption_n do_v not_o yield_v such_o comfortable_a conclusion_n to_o the_o believer_n as_o the_o other_o will_v appear_v by_o compare_v they_o together_o for_o the_o great_a consolation_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v upon_o solid_a ground_n to_o conclude_v a_o unchangeable_a interest_n in_o god_n but_o the_o latter_a and_o not_o the_o former_a will_v yield_v this_o for_o this_o be_v solid_a and_o comfortable_a reason_n these_o that_o be_v redeem_v be_v make_v king_n and_o priest_n to_o god_n and_o shall_v reign_v with_o he_o etc._n etc._n because_o there_o be_v a_o indissoluble_a and_o peremptory_a connexion_n between_o these_o but_o may_v one_o assume_v i_o be_o redeem_v therefore_o etc._n etc._n if_o this_o assumption_n be_v question_v to_o wit_n whether_o i_o be_v redeem_v or_o not_o because_o redemption_n be_v not_o universal_a then_o it_o may_v thus_o proceed_v all_o these_o that_o be_v spiritual_o king_n and_o priest_n and_o be_v make_v subject_a to_o christ_n be_v free_v from_o the_o dominion_n of_o their_o corruption_n and_o admit_v with_o boldness_n to_o offer_v themselves_o and_o their_o service_n to_o god_n by_o christ_n jesus_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v redeem_v and_o shall_v certain_o obtain_v salvation_n but_o the_o conscience_n upon_o self-examination_n where_o there_o be_v ground_n for_o it_o may_v assume_v it_o be_v so_o with_o i_o therefore_o i_o be_o redeem_v and_o shall_v obtain_v salvation_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o comfortable_a and_o solid_a conclusion_n and_o can_v fail_v where_o the_o promise_n be_v well_o ground_v because_o of_o the_o necessary_a connexion_n that_o be_v between_o redemption_n justification_n sanctification_n and_o salvation_n so_o that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v evidence_v do_v infer_v all_o and_o spiritual_o to_o reign_v in_o some_o measure_n over_o the_o world_n and_o a_o body_n of_o death_n and_o spiritual_o to_o perform_v worship_n unto_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v infallible_a evidence_n of_o sanctification_n and_o fruit_n of_o this_o redemption_n they_o give_v good_a ground_n for_o a_o conscience_n to_o make_v application_n of_o the_o former_a general_a truth_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o we_o will_v loose_v this_o connexion_n and_o say_v that_o all_o be_v redeem_v or_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o they_o and_o yet_o few_o will_v be_v save_v it_o can_v but_o ever_o leave_v the_o soul_n at_o a_o uncertainty_n under_o this_o most_o comfortless_a conclusion_n although_o i_o be_v redeem_v yet_o i_o may_v perish_v because_o many_o for_o who_o christ_n have_v die_v be_v never_o actual_o free_v from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o thereby_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v still_o leave_v in_o a_o comfortless_a condition_n which_o be_v most_o unlike_a the_o nature_n of_o this_o redemption_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v and_o most_o disagreeable_a to_o the_o consolation_n which_o be_v allow_v to_o the_o redeem_v by_o god_n and_o wherein_o they_o comfort_v themselves_o in_o this_o song_n we_o conclude_v then_o that_o it_o be_v more_o comfortable_a to_o a_o believer_n to_o reason_n from_o this_o universal_a all_o that_o be_v redeem_v and_o be_v king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n shall_v be_v save_v where_o the_o consequent_a and_o antecedent_n be_v of_o equal_a extent_n than_o to_o say_v all_o be_v redeem_v and_o yet_o few_o shall_v or_o none_o may_v be_v save_v and_o this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o can_v but_o be_v most_o comfortable_a to_o his_o people_n and_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n for_o man_n to_o imagine_v by_o his_o carnal_a reason_n to_o mould_n a_o more_o comfortable_a doctrine_n for_o though_o at_o first_o it_o look_v more_o plausible-like_a to_o flesh_n to_o say_v that_o all_o be_v redeem_v than_o to_o say_v but_o some_o yet_o indeed_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v so_o for_o even_o upon_o supposition_n that_o that_o ground_n be_v lay_v no_o man_n can_v gather_v any_o solid_a consolation_n therefrom_o but_o upon_o condition_n of_o his_o receive_n of_o christ_n and_o rest_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n now_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v suppon_v this_o ground_n few_o be_v redeem_v but_o all_o these_o who_o be_v redeem_v shall_v be_v save_v do_v yield_v more_o solid_a consolation_n than_o the_o former_a because_o it_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n to_o such_o whereas_o the_o other_o ground_n pretend_v to_o bear_v forth_o a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o or_o a_o salvability_n do_v indeed_o make_v it_o certain_a to_o none_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o this_o be_v true_a indeed_o upon_o supposition_n that_o one_o be_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n then_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o so_o to_o conclude_v be_v more_o comfortable_a but_o suppose_v one_o not_o to_o be_v a_o believer_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o comfortless_a doctrine_n
make_v to_o god_n in_o his_o name_n how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o proper_o any_o thing_n be_v purchase_v by_o christ_n suffering_n to_o he_o for_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v christ_n death_n as_o it_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n and_o price_n offer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o any_o that_o do_v procure_v any_o good_a to_o they_o beside_o christ_n bearing_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o any_o and_o their_o obtain_n of_o justification_n be_v still_o link_v together_o as_o be_v former_o say_v and_o therefore_o see_v no_o reprobate_n be_v justify_v it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v bear_v their_o sin_n and_o consequent_o upon_o that_o account_n have_v procure_v any_o thing_n to_o they_o this_o difference_n may_v be_v thus_o illustrate_v as_o suppose_v one_o have_v intend_v out_o of_o a_o number_n of_o slave_n to_o relieve_v so_o many_o shall_v therefore_o covenant_v a_o price_n for_o they_o and_o actual_o pay_v the_o same_o have_v withal_o this_o include_v in_o the_o bargain_n that_o so_o many_o other_o slave_n shall_v be_v appoint_v to_o wait_v on_o he_o till_o these_o ransom_a one_o be_v safe_o transport_v and_o for_o that_o end_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o a_o time_n free_v from_o some_o common_a drudgery_n that_o other_o slave_n be_v lie_v under_o and_o be_v someway_o fit_v in_o their_o apparel_n and_o otherways_o as_o may_v become_v his_o honour_n and_o further_o he_o in_o the_o gather_n together_o ship_v and_o transport_v of_o these_o who_o actual_o he_o have_v buy_v yet_o still_o he_o neither_o mind_v the_o relieve_n of_o these_o nor_o do_v for_o that_o end_n pay_v in_o the_o least_o measure_n their_o ransom_n but_o only_o have_v this_o article_v to_o he_o as_o conduce_v to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o main_a bargain_n in_o that_o case_n it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v proper_o buy_v these_o who_o he_o mind_v never_o to_o transport_v or_o that_o any_o price_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o principal_a bargain_n be_v lay_v in_o their_o name_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o many_o advantage_n do_v follow_v upon_o that_o bargain_n to_o such_o beyond_o other_o which_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o miscarriage_n may_v turn_v to_o their_o great_a hurt_n as_o suppose_v they_o shall_v refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o or_o to_o put_v on_o the_o clothes_n bestow_v upon_o they_o but_o shall_v abandon_v he_o and_o renounce_v their_o present_a liberty_n and_o not_o wait_v on_o to_o the_o end_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o procure_v themselves_o just_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o any_o favour_n and_o to_o be_v punish_v for_o their_o ingratitude_n so_o may_v it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o present_a case_n yet_o we_o shall_v not_o much_o contend_v for_o word_n as_o whether_o such_o a_o thing_n shall_v be_v call_v a_o consequent_a or_o a_o effect_n provide_v christ_n be_v not_o say_v to_o have_v sustain_v the_o room_n of_o or_o by_o be_v make_v sin_n to_o have_v satisfy_v in_o less_o or_o more_o for_o any_o who_o he_o do_v not_o actual_o redeem_v and_o own_v for_o his._n the_o four_o question_n be_v if_o christ_n jesus_n the_o only_a absolute_a redeemer_n of_o the_o elect_a alone_o may_v not_o yet_o be_v say_v to_o have_v redeem_v all_o man_n conditional_o and_o in_o the_o lay_n down_o of_o his_o life_n to_o have_v intend_v the_o purchase_n of_o life_n to_o all_o upon_o this_o condition_n if_o they_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o this_o conditional_a redemption_n be_v diverse_o express_v by_o learned_a man_n who_o in_o their_o write_n do_v abhor_v the_o grosseness_n of_o the_o socianian_a and_o arminian_n doctrine_n concern_v redemption_n some_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v absolute_o for_o none_o but_o conditional_o for_o all_o that_o be_v that_o he_o purchase_v life_n for_o all_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v die_v for_o they_o and_o that_o god_n by_o his_o decree_n of_o election_n have_v decree_v to_o give_v faith_n to_o some_o and_o not_o to_o other_o whereby_o christ_n death_n become_v effectual_a to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o other_o which_o difference_n do_v yet_o flow_v from_o nothing_o in_o christ_n death_n they_o say_v also_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n procure_v freedom_n to_o all_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n so_o that_o that_o be_v remove_v from_o all_o except_o any_o by_o not_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v die_v for_o they_o shall_v make_v themselves_o liable_a to_o that_o curse_n as_o cameron_n assert_v pag._n 584._o this_o opinion_n do_v not_o lay_v the_o weight_n of_o man_n make_n themselves_o to_o differ_v upon_o themselves_o but_o it_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o freedom_n sovereignty_n and_o power_n of_o grace_n as_o also_o the_o impotency_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n yet_o we_o conceive_v it_o be_v dangerous_a and_o do_v direct_o contradict_v what_o have_v be_v assert_v from_o the_o text._n for_o 1._o it_o deny_v any_o even_o the_o elect_n to_o be_v absolute_o redeem_v which_o though_o true_a in_o some_o sense_n to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o method_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o application_n of_o the_o purchase_a redemption_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v true_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o purchase_n and_o bargain_n itself_o or_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o party_n bargain_v in_o this_o purchase_n because_o christ_n do_v not_o buy_v pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n to_o sinner_n abstract_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v but_o do_v particular_o and_o absolute_o purchase_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n to_o such_o and_o such_o as_o be_v propose_v to_o he_o and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o by_o buy_v salvation_n to_o the_o elect_a upon_o condition_n they_o shall_v believe_v without_o make_v both_o the_o condition_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o salvation_n sure_a unto_o they_o but_o he_o absolute_o redeem_v peter_n john_n and_o other_o elect_a person_n by_o purchase_v salvation_n and_o every_o thing_n needful_a for_o the_o make_n of_o it_o sure_a unto_o they_o although_o in_o due_a manner_n these_o be_v to_o be_v communicate_v according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o covenant_n 2._o it_o do_v deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o christ_n purchase_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o be_v former_o say_v 3._o this_o do_v assert_v the_o reprobate_n by_o christ_n death_n to_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o eat_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o upon_o condition_n of_o believe_v they_o be_v to_o be_v free_v from_o it_o if_o so_o they_o do_v fulfil_v that_o condition_n for_o that_o be_v not_o controvert_v but_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o some_o freedom_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n that_o redound_v actual_o to_o the_o reprobate_n from_o christ_n death_n and_o it_o do_v suppone_v they_o to_o have_v attain_v some_o freedom_n thereby_o which_o their_o after_o unbelief_n and_o ingratitude_n do_v make_v void_a unto_o they_o and_o so_o they_o have_v not_o this_o freedom_n from_o the_o curse_n offer_v to_o they_o upon_o condition_n of_o their_o believe_v but_o they_o have_v it_o if_o by_o their_o unbelief_n they_o do_v not_o mar_v their_o right_n to_o it_o now_o this_o so_o understand_v will_v infer_v that_o christ_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n in_o the_o room_n of_o all_o man_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o be_v say_v for_o they_o can_v be_v think_v to_o be_v free_v any_o way_n from_o under_o the_o curse_n except_o by_o his_o sustain_n it_o for_o they_o and_o his_o bear_n of_o the_o curse_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o any_o or_o his_o take_n on_o their_o iniquity_n have_v ever_o their_o freedom_n follow_v upon_o it_o for_o who_o he_o do_v the_o same_o as_o be_v former_o mark_v again_o there_o be_v many_o of_o mankind_n suppose_v young_a child_n die_v before_o any_o actual_a sin_n who_o can_v be_v liable_a to_o any_o other_o curse_n but_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o can_v all_o these_o even_o such_o as_o be_v without_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o promise_n be_v say_v peremptory_o and_o absolute_o to_o be_v save_v beside_o this_o will_v infer_v that_o either_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o breach_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n impute_v to_o they_o or_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v that_o debt_n impute_v to_o they_o wh●ch_n christ_n himself_o do_v pay_v in_o their_o name_n which_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o scripture_n former_o mention_v 4._o this_o do_v make_v christ_n death_n consider_v as_o to_o he_o and_o in_o itself_o to_o be_v equal_o lay_v down_o for_o peter_n and_o judas_n which_o the_o author_n of_o this_o opinion_n will_v abhor_v yet_o do_v it_o necessary_o follow_v thereupon_o for_o suppose_v christ_n to_o die_v
that_o as_o upon_o the_o one_o side_n he_o do_v hold_v forth_o god_n peculiar_a respect_n to_o the_o elect_a world_n so_o upon_o the_o other_o he_o do_v hold_v forth_o god_n acceptation_n of_o all_o whosoever_o shall_v believe_v that_o the_o peculiarity_n of_o the_o redemption_n may_v not_o stumble_v any_o in_o their_o approach_n to_o christ_n who_o have_v the_o offer_n of_o the_o gospel_n make_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o word_n say_v in_o sum_n a_o believer_n can_v fail_v of_o salvation_n see_v god_n have_v that_o respect_n to_o his_o elect_n as_o to_o give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n to_o purchase_v this_o unto_o they_o and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v in_o these_o indefinite_a term_n and_o can_v but_o be_v true_a see_v it_o be_v the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n a_o four_o difficulty_n follow_v this_o opinion_n be_v that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o conceive_v how_o christ_n can_v conditional_o die_v and_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o the_o redeem_n of_o many_o who_o be_v actual_o already_o condemn_v in_o hell_n yet_o this_o universal_a conditional_a redemption_n will_v infer_v this_o otherways_o the_o reprobate_n who_o live_v before_o christ_n death_n be_v not_o so_o much_o oblige_v to_o he_o as_o these_o who_o do_v succeed_v if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o although_o christ_n actual_o die_v in_o time_n yet_o the_o transaction_n be_v eternal_a before_o any_o man_n live_v in_o the_o world_n this_o will_v not_o remove_v the_o difficulty_n because_o though_o it_o be_v transact_v before_o time_n yet_o no_o question_n it_o be_v so_o regulate_v as_o it_o may_v be_v perform_v in_o time_n now_o can_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o transaction_n be_v in_o these_o term_n that_o the_o mediator_n shall_v die_v and_o lay_v down_o a_o price_n for_o so_o many_o elect_n who_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o glory_n before_o his_o suffering_n and_o that_o also_o he_o shall_v pay_v so_o much_o in_o the_o name_n of_o so_o many_o reprobate_n who_o for_o their_o own_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v actual_o damn_v at_o the_o time_n of_o payment_n and_o whatever_o be_v say_v of_o the_o transaction_n yet_o when_o it_o come_v to_o christ_n suffering_n it_o must_v either_o be_v say_v that_o these_o be_v score_v out_o so_o as_o christ_n do_v not_o bear_v their_o iniquity_n or_o die_v for_o they_o in_o any_o respect_n or_o it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o before_o god_n justice_n christ_n do_v bear_v the_o iniquity_n and_o pay_v in_o the_o name_n of_o such_o as_o be_v actual_o in_o hell_n suffer_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n at_o that_o same_o instant_n of_o time_n five_o it_o may_v be_v ask_v what_o do_v become_v of_o all_o infant_n whether_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n or_o without_o it_o who_o die_v in_o their_o infancy_n according_a to_o the_o former_a ground_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o determine_v for_o none_o can_v say_v upon_o the_o one_o side_n that_o they_o be_v all_o absolute_o redeem_v and_o save_v there_o be_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n for_o this_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o can_v be_v well_o understand_v for_o though_o some_o of_o they_o be_v within_o the_o conditional_a covenant_n make_v with_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v more_o rigid_o construct_v of_o than_o these_o at_o age_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o perform_v act_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o fulfil_v that_o condition_n and_o this_o incapacity_n do_v not_o mere_o flow_v from_o man_n corruption_n as_o it_o do_v in_o man_n at_o age_n but_o be_v natural_a to_o young_a one_o as_o not_o to_o understand_v speak_v or_o walk_v be_v now_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o say_v that_o such_o child_n who_o die_v in_o their_o infancy_n be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n upon_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v understand_v speak_v walk_v etc._n etc._n or_o of_o a_o child_n die_v in_o such_o a_o condition_n suppose_v it_o be_v one_o not_o absolute_o redeem_v it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o that_o child_n be_v redeem_v upon_o this_o condition_n that_o it_o have_v walk_v speak_v etc._n etc._n when_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o possible_o of_o one_o hour_n age_n again_o can_v it_o be_v say_v of_o child_n within_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v not_o absolute_o redeem_v that_o it_o be_v indeterminable_a whether_o christ_n do_v die_v conditional_o for_o they_o or_o not_o at_o least_o till_o they_o come_v to_o such_o a_o age_n as_o they_o themselves_o may_v act_v faith_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v here_o that_o he_o redeem_v reprobate_a child_n in_o the_o church_n conditional_o as_o he_o do_v absolute_o redeem_v these_o that_o be_v elect_a although_o even_o these_o can_v act_v faith_n for_o he_o purchase_v to_o the_o elect_a save_a grace_n in_o the_o seed_n thereof_o and_o a_o new_a nature_n to_o be_v communicate_v to_o they_o whereof_o the_o young_a child_n be_v capable_a see_v therein_o they_o be_v mere_o passive_a but_o in_o that_o conditional_a redemption_n there_o be_v nothing_o purchase_v to_o any_o but_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o receive_v christ_n offer_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o which_o do_v suppose_v a_o activeness_n and_o act_v to_o be_v in_o these_o to_o who_o the_o offer_n be_v make_v of_o which_o child_n be_v not_o capable_a and_o if_o this_o condition_n can_v be_v suppose_v only_o to_o infer_v something_o wherein_o child_n may_v be_v mere_o passive_a then_o this_o will_v be_v the_o meaning_n thereof_o to_o wit_n that_o christ_n redeem_v such_o child_n upon_o condition_n that_o he_o himself_o shall_v confer_v such_o and_o such_o thing_n on_o they_o in_o receive_v of_o which_o they_o can_v only_o be_v passive_a which_o will_v not_o look_v like_o a_o conditional_a covenant_n for_o the_o perform_n of_o the_o condition_n will_v be_v on_o christ_n side_n and_o not_o upon_o they_o and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v absolute_a as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o elect_a child_n neither_o will_v it_o remove_v this_o difficulty_n to_o say_v that_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o father_n privilege_n and_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v according_o for_o this_o can_v be_v say_v of_o save_a privilege_n so_o as_o if_o no_o elect_a parent_n can_v have_v a_o reprobate_a child_n or_o no_o reprobate_a parent_n a_o elect_a child_n die_v at_o such_o a_o age_n because_o these_o thing_n belong_v unto_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o god_n and_o he_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v bound_v in_o respect_n of_o all_o particular_a child_n beside_o experience_n in_o the_o word_n give_v ground_n to_o we_o to_o call_v it_o in_o question_n it_o must_v then_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o federall_a privilege_n and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o external_a administration_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o this_o will_v say_v nothing_o to_o the_o difficulty_n because_o the_o doubt_n be_v still_o what_o to_o say_v of_o child_n that_o be_v within_o the_o conditional_a covenant_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o parent_n that_o be_v within_o the_o visible_a church_n yet_o suppose_v they_o to_o die_v instant_o or_o in_o their_o nonage_n they_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v conditional_o redeem_v because_o of_o the_o reason_n foresay_a six_o if_o the_o reprobate_n be_v conditional_o redeem_v then_o that_o redemption_n of_o they_o be_v either_o transact_v in_o the_o same_o covenant_n with_o the_o absolute_a redemption_n of_o the_o elect_n or_o not_o they_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v comprehend_v within_o the_o same_o covenant_n because_o all_o such_o as_o be_v comprehend_v in_o it_o be_v contradistinguish_v from_o other_o as_o be_v the_o lord_n choose_v and_o such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n etc._n etc._n again_o this_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n include_v the_o mean_n with_o the_o end_n for_o it_o be_v order_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o sure_a which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o this_o conditional_a covenant_n therefore_o they_o can_v be_v comprehend_v in_o one_o and_o it_o will_v not_o sound_v well_o to_o say_v that_o the_o elect_v redemption_n and_o that_o of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v contain_v in_o one_o covenant_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o distinct_a bargain_n beside_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n because_o 1._o that_o be_v indeed_o to_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v no_o redemption_n see_v it_o be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n 2._o the_o business_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v only_o transact_v in_o that_o covenant_n where_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o elect_n be_v absolute_o conclude_v because_o it_o be_v the_o great_a mid_n design_v for_o make_v of_o that_o effectual_a therefore_o ought_v it_o as_o to_o the_o extent_n of_o its_o merit_n to_o be_v proportion_v to_o the_o object_n of_o that_o
arm_n as_o this_o rider_n have_v yet_o be_v there_o even_o such_o a_o restraint_n as_o make_v the_o church_n have_v still_o a_o be_v in_o despite_n of_o they_o as_o will_v be_v more_o clear_a in_o the_o follow_a seal_n from_o which_o also_o we_o may_v gather_v these_o observation_n 1._o that_o there_o may_v be_v many_o sad_a trial_n pass_v unto_o god_n people_n and_o yet_o more_o sad_a before_o they_o or_o that_o the_o sad_a trial_n come_v often_o last_v like_o woman_n travel_v the_o sharp_a shower_n come_v last_v immediate_o before_o a_o delivery_n there_o be_v no_o warrant_n for_o god_n people_n to_o limit_v their_o own_o trial_n or_o to_o sit_v down_o upon_o beginning_n 2._o after-trial_n have_v ordinary_o some_o other_o circumstance_n and_o aggravation_n beyond_o the_o former_a as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o the_o gradation_n of_o these_o seal_n trial_n be_v like_o physic_n to_o god_n people_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o new_a ingredient_n to_o purge_v away_o such_o humour_n and_o corruption_n as_o former_a potion_n have_v not_o reach_v 3._o when_o trial_n begin_v on_o god_n people_n they_o ordinary_o come_v to_o some_o great_a height_n ere_o there_o be_v a_o turn_n 1_o sam._n 3.12_o god_n have_v ordinary_o some_o more_o than_o ordinary_a cause_n in_o bring_v they_o which_o he_o will_v accomplish_v and_o often_o man_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o his_o design_n by_o small_a rod_n therefore_o be_v there_o yet_o seven_o time_n more_o and_o seven_o time_n more_o add_v unto_o the_o former_a as_o it_o be_v levit._fw-la 26._o 4._o god_n will_v sometime_o give_v persecuter_n great_a seem_a advantage_n and_o will_v bring_v his_o church_n very_o low_a under_o they_o we_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o fret_v or_o repine_v under_o our_o suffering_n which_o be_v not_o worth_a to_o be_v mention_v in_o comparison_n of_o these_o here_o 5._o though_o death_n and_o the_o grave_n etc._n etc._n be_v terrible_a yet_o god_n have_v they_o order_v in_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o they_o they_o be_v limit_v by_o he_o and_o be_v not_o boundless_a in_o their_o commission_n they_o be_v order_v by_o he_o and_o neither_o death_n famine_n nor_o pestilence_n walk_v at_o random_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o pestilence_n in_o hebrew_n be_v express_v by_o a_o word_n deber_n which_o signify_v speech_n or_o command_n because_o how_o ever_o it_o walk_v in_o darkness_n as_o to_o man_n yet_o walk_v it_o not_o one_o step_n without_o god_n word_n of_o command_n this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o other_o trial_n or_o death_n which_o be_v as_o precise_o regulate_v by_o god_n 6._o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o most_o horrid_a massacre_n of_o god_n people_n can_v wrong_v they_o nor_o mar_v god_n design_n concern_v they_o all_o these_o trial_n do_v but_o as_o polycarp_n say_v of_o the_o beast_n tooth_n to_o which_o he_o be_v to_o be_v casten_z as_o a_o miln_n grind_v they_o that_o they_o may_v as_o good_a wheat_n be_v fit_v for_o their_o lord_n table_n 7._o we_o may_v gather_v god_n people_n happiness_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o god_n love_n to_o they_o do_v not_o consist_v in_o outward_a thing_n their_o lot_n be_v often_o suffer_v from_o one_o seal_n to_o another_o death_n the_o king_n of_o terror_n job_n 18.14_o march_v upon_o they_o whileas_o the_o world_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o he_o these_o be_v old_a truth_n that_o through_o many_o affliction_n be_v the_o way_n to_o glory_n and_o who_o so_o will_v live_v godly_a shall_v suffer_v persecution_n god_n people_n will_v make_v for_o trial_n see_v these_o word_n be_v yet_o unscrape_v out_o of_o the_o bible_n and_o the_o story_n of_o these_o time_n do_v confirm_v it_o for_o however_o there_o may_v be_v difference_n in_o the_o name_n of_o instrument_n time_a of_o event_n and_o other_o circumstance_n among_o writter_n yet_o in_o the_o main_a they_o agree_v lecture_n vi._n vers._n 9_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o five_o seal_n i_o see_v under_o the_o altar_n the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v slay_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a three_o seal_n we_o have_v hear_v many_o sad_a event_n prophesy_v of_o to_o befall_v the_o church_n every_o one_o sad_a than_o the_o former_a till_o at_o last_o death_n and_o the_o grave_n come_v as_o the_o yondmost_a step_n of_o temporal_a affliction_n so_o that_o man_n may_v now_o be_v in_o a_o doubt_n what_o have_v become_v of_o the_o many_o soul_n that_o have_v be_v murder_v for_o jesus_n christ_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v better_a to_o have_v want_v the_o white_a horse_n and_o his_o rider_n or_o not_o to_o have_v stick_v so_o to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n than_o to_o have_v suffer_v so_o many_o sad_a thing_n for_o it_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o seal_n be_v to_o remove_v that_o doubt_n and_o to_o comfort_v against_o that_o tentation_n that_o though_o persecution_n shall_v come_v to_o the_o high_o they_o can_v reach_v unto_o that_o be_v to_o take_v away_o the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n yet_o be_v not_o their_o happiness_n mar_v by_o it_o they_o have_v soul_n unto_o which_o persecution_n do_v not_o reach_v which_o after_o death_n enjoy_v blessedness_n and_o therefore_o their_o trouble_n be_v not_o to_o be_v scare_v at_o nor_o exchange_v with_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o worldly_a man_n nor_o suffer_v to_o be_v shun_v for_o fear_n of_o any_o hazard_n which_o deny_v it_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n which_o be_v here_o make_v out_o in_o these_o four_o 1._o by_o show_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o believer_n have_v a_o life_n after_o the_o body_n be_v kill_v and_o a_o comfortable_a be_v in_o the_o enjoy_n of_o god_n i_o see_v say_v he_o the_o soul_n etc._n etc._n 2._o by_o show_v that_o their_o death_n be_v precious_a in_o god_n sight_n and_o that_o vengeance_n on_o their_o persecuter_n be_v as_o certain_a as_o if_o their_o cry_n unto_o god_n day_n and_o night_n for_o that_o end_n be_v ascend_v and_o he_o particular_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o 3._o by_o show_v the_o wise_a end_n for_o which_o god_n suspend_v that_o vengeance_n which_o proceed_v not_o from_o his_o forget_v of_o they_o but_o be_v so_o order_v for_o the_o accomplish_n of_o his_o own_o design_n 4._o by_o hold_v forth_o god_n present_a kindness_n unto_o the_o soul_n of_o these_o murder_a person_n in_o clothing_n they_o with_o white_a robe_n so_o that_o the_o suspension_n of_o god_n vengeance_n upon_o their_o persecuter_n i●_n no_o let_v nor_o interruption_n to_o their_o present_a happiness_n or_o comfortable_a enjoy_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v more_o doctrinal_a than_o prophetical_a try_v with_o the_o former_a sad_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o consolation_n unto_o believer_n and_o a_o encouragement_n against_o the_o former_a great_a strait_n as_o be_v say_v we_o take_v up_o the_o matter_n in_o these_o two_o 1._o in_o something_o which_o john_n see_v 2._o in_o that_o which_o john_n hear_v which_o also_o have_v two_o part_n first_o a_o sad_a cry_n second_o a_o comfortable_a answer_n to_o it_o this_o seal_n differ_v from_o the_o former_a seal_n in_o these_o three_o 1._o that_o it_o have_v no_o type_n of_o horse_n nor_o rider_n as_o all_o the_o former_a have_v 2._o that_o it_o have_v no_o voice_n call_z come_v and_o see_v 3●_n that_o it_o relate_v not_o to_o any_o such_o particular_a time_n as_o the_o former_a do_v but_o in_o its_o scope_n be_v common_a to_o all_o these_o persecution_n as_o when_o he_o say_v i_o see_v the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v slay_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v astrict_v to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n slay_v at_o such_o and_o such_o a_o time_n but_o be_v applicable_a to_o all_o slay_v for_o such_o a_o cause_n especial_o these_o under_o all_o the_o former_a persecution_n as_o the_o prayer_n how_o long_o etc._n etc._n import_v the_o reason_n of_o which_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v because_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o seal_n be_v not_o prophetical_o to_o point_v out_o new_a event_n and_o to_o relate_v to_o a_o particular_a time_n but_o to_o lay_v down_o some_o solid_a ground_n of_o comfort_n to_o god_n people_n as_o be_v say_v concern_v which_o these_o thing_n be_v clear_a 1._o that_o this_o seal_n look_v to_o the_o most_o sad_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n when_o soul_n be_v so_o put_v to_o it_o to_o cry_v as_o if_o they_o can_v endure_v no_o long_o 2._o that_o it_o relate_v to_o former_a suffering_n and_o that_o not_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o for_o suffering_n of_o some_o continuance_n their_o complaint_n that_o their_o blood_n ●s_v spil●_n imply_v their_o suffering_n to_o be_v pass_v and_o their_o cry_n how_o long_o imply_v
that_o though_o god_n people_n be_v liable_a to_o many_o suffering_n yet_o their_o consolation_n be_v consider_v do_v far_o exceed_v they_o all_o 2._o that_o god_n people_n be_v not_o to_o place_v their_o consolation_n on_o this_o side_n of_o time_n it_o consist_v most_o in_o their_o comfortable_a be_v and_o enjoy_v of_o god_n after_o this_o 3._o that_o in_o suffer_v time_n they_o will_v comfort_v themselves_o in_o the_o happy_a outgate_n of_o their_o suffering_n and_o look_v more_o to_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v eternal_a than_o to_o the_o thing_n see_v which_o be_v but_o temporal_a 4._o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n that_o soul_n have_v a_o life_n and_o be_v when_o the_o body_n turn_v unto_o dust_n and_o that_o they_o exist_v be_v separate_v from_o body_n the_o soul_n at_o man_n creation_n be_v difference_v from_o the_o body_n as_o not_o be_v make_v of_o that_o substance_n but_o in_o a_o peculiar_a way_n be_v create_v and_o infuse_v by_o god_n gen._n 2._o at_o death_n the_o soul_n be_v contradistinguish_v from_o the_o body_n matth._n 10.28_o the_o one_o die_v the_o other_o can_v after_o death_n they_o be_v difference_v also_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o wicked_a as_o these_o place_n eccles._n 12.7_o philip._n 1.23_o act._n 7.59_o christ_n word_n to_o the_o thief_n luk._n 23._o and_o that_o parable_n of_o the_o rich_a glutton_n and_o lazarus_n abundant_o do_v clear_a 5._o the_o soul_n of_o believer_n especial_o of_o sufferer_n be_v in_o a_o most_o happy_a condition_n after_o death_n to_o wit_n under_o the_o altar_n in_o paradise_n abraham_n bosom_n with_o christ_n jesus_n etc._n etc._n god_n have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o his_o saint_n they_o be_v precious_a to_o he_o their_o reward_n be_v great_a in_o heaven_n mat._n 5._o and_o sufferer_n with_o he_o they_o do_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n reign_v with_o he_o which_o be_v well_o consider_v there_o will_v be_v no_o great_a cause_n to_o scare_v at_o suffering_n 6._o from_o the_o description_n of_o these_o martyr_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o every_o suffering_n for_o every_o thing_n which_o will_v denominate_v one_o a_o martyr_n of_o christ_n it_o must_v be_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o that_o testimony_n or_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v so_o account_v it_o be_v record_v by_o baron_n a_o 19_o of_o dioclesian_n that_o in_o these_o primitive_a persecution_n especial_o that_o last_o that_o many_o assume_v to_o themselves_o out_o of_o pride_n and_o have_v ascribe_v unto_o they_o by_o other_o the_o title_n of_o martyr_n unjust_o wherefore_o it_o be_v appoint_v that_o where_o any_o christian_n suffer_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o suffering_n shall_v be_v diligent_o observe_v that_o these_o who_o be_v find_v worthy_a may_v be_v enroll_v and_o that_o none_o other_o but_o such_o shall_v be_v account_v so_o this_o afterward_o turn_v to_o much_o superstition_n and_o give_v occasion_n to_o that_o superstitious_a canonise_a of_o saint_n which_o afterward_o follow_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o have_v it_o a_o honest_a intent_n in_o the_o author_n thereof_o as_o 1._o to_o keep_v the_o credit_n of_o martyrdom_n from_o that_o contempt_n which_o come_v upon_o it_o when_o man_n that_o be_v scandalous_a in_o their_o conversation_n be_v so_o repute_v 2._o to_o bound_v that_o carnal_a itch_a pride_n in_o many_o who_o because_o of_o that_o honour_n to_o be_v account_v martyr_n thrust_v themselves_o unwarrantable_o into_o suffer_v this_o honour_n be_v especial_o deny_v to_o three_o sort_n of_o sufferer_n 1._o to_o these_o who_o by_o profaneness_n in_o their_o conversation_n heresy_n in_o their_o doctrine_n schism_n in_o their_o practice_n have_v walk_v unbecoming_a the_o gospel_n hence_o the_o catholic_n so_o the_o orthodox_n be_v call_v when_o they_o be_v lead_v to_o suffer_v with_o marcionits_n novatian_n or_o other_o such_o like_a for_o sometime_o persecution_n rage_v upon_o all_o that_o be_v christian_n by_o name_n do_v still_o disclaim_v all_o fellowship_n with_o these_o heretic_n in_o their_o error_n as_o not_o account_v they_o witness_n to_o christ_n in_o their_o suffering_n a_o second_o sort_n that_o be_v deny_v be_v such_o as_o without_o god_n call_v by_o their_o rashness_n occasion_v their_o own_o suffering_n such_o as_o these_o who_o be_v unasked_a profess_v they_o be_v christian_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o bible_n but_o will_v not_o give_v it_o a_o three_o sort_n refuse_v be_v such_o as_o have_v faint_v in_o their_o confession_n former_o though_o afterward_o they_o shall_v become_v sufferer_n this_o be_v not_o do_v as_o if_o they_o account_v they_o not_o martyr_n indeed_o but_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v prevent_v faint_a when_o any_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o a_o testimony_n so_o baron_n pag._n 746._o and_o 760._o where_o he_o set_v down_o the_o decree_n of_o one_o mensurius_n a_o bishop_n in_o africa_n ordain_v none_o that_o occasion_v their_o own_o suffering_n to_o be_v enroll_v and_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o quia_fw-la non_fw-la divino_fw-la instinctu_fw-la ducti_fw-la sed_fw-la temeritate_fw-la acti_fw-la id_fw-la saciunt_fw-la 7._o observe_v that_o the_o give_v of_o a_o testimony_n by_o outward_a confession_n of_o the_o truth_n when_o called-for_a be_v necessary_a and_o commendable_a as_o well_o as_o foundnesse_n of_o faith_n yea_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o the_o outward_a testify_v of_o the_o truth_n before_o man_n more_o than_o the_o faith_n of_o it_o before_o god_n that_o bring_v on_o suffer_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o abhor_v in_o the_o primitive_a christian_n than_o dissemble_v of_o a_o testimony_n to_o evite_v suffer_v as_o appear_v in_o augustins_n write_n de_fw-fr mendacio_n &_o contra_fw-la mendacium_fw-la and_o the_o writing_n of_o other_o to_o that_o purpose_n wherein_o three_o sort_n that_o creep_v in_o in_o these_o time_n be_v sharp_o condemn_v as_o first_o these_o who_o call_v themselves_o nicodemite_n but_o false_o from_o nicodemus_n who_o be_v say_v to_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o night_n and_o not_o open_o allege_v it_o to_o be_v enough_o to_o be_v inward_o sound_a and_o to_o keep_v their_o heart_n mind_n and_o intention_n clean_o though_o they_o do_v not_o evidence_n or_o express_v that_o soundness_n to_o other_o such_o thought_n they_o may_v be_v christian_n and_o yet_o let_v none_o other_o know_v it_o a_o second_o sort_n be_v the_o priscillianist_n who_o be_v most_o vile_a heretic_n particular_o assert_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o god_n substance_n do_v also_o maintain_v and_o practice_v this_o that_o they_o may_v hide_v their_o opinion_n and_o carry_v so_o with_o these_o they_o converse_v with_o as_o if_o they_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n with_o they_o a_o three_o sort_n be_v such_o as_o out_o of_o a_o mislead_a zeal_n to_o discover_v the_o former_a do_v counterfeit_a as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v maintainer_n of_o that_o error_n to_o make_v these_o heretic_n the_o more_o free_o to_o communicate_v their_o tenet_n unto_o they_o the_o primitive_a father_n utter_o condemn_v all_o these_o as_o inconsistent_a with_o christian_a simplicity_n which_o require_v a_o testimony_n of_o the_o mouth_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n in_o the_o heart_n obs._n 8._o that_o every_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n may_v be_v a_o ground_n of_o suffer_v warrantable_o for_o the_o least_o thing_n that_o have_v a_o truth_n in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o more_o concern_v fundamental_a truth_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v dispense_v with_o by_o his_o people_n 9_o every_o truth_n in_o the_o word_n have_v a_o outward_a testimony_n join_v to_o it_o and_o sometime_o may_v be_v called-for_a upon_o very_o great_a hazard_n 10._o when_o it_o be_v called-for_a this_o testimony_n or_o confession_n to_o any_o truth_n before_o man_n be_v no_o less_o necessary_a and_o aught_o as_o peremptory_o to_o be_v hold_v and_o stick_v to_o as_o the_o former_a therefore_o it_o be_v call_v rom._n 10._o confession_n unto_o salvation_n and_o called-for_a by_o a_o peremptory_a certification_n math._n 10.32_o 33._o obs._n 11._o that_o these_o who_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o word_n will_v be_v also_o exceed_o tenacious_a of_o their_o testimony_n in_o scripture_n and_o in_o primitive_a time_n we_o will_v find_v the_o saint_n stick_v at_o and_o hazard_v themselves_o on_o thing_n which_o appear_v of_o very_o small_a moment_n yet_o be_v to_o they_o of_o great_a concernment_n because_o of_o the_o testimony_n which_o be_v involve_v in_o they_o which_o they_o will_v not_o let_v go_v such_o be_v mordecai_n ester_n 3_o daniel_n 6._o his_o not_o shuting_z of_o his_o window_n when_o this_o persecution_n of_o dioclesian_n begin_v the_o persecuter_n seek_v but_o the_o bibles_n the_o poor_n coat_n money_n or_o cup_n wherewith_o they_o serve_v to_o be_v give_v they_o as_o some_o evidence_n of_o their_o cede_a
domitian_n and_o many_o other_o bring_v death_n upon_o themselves_o as_o be_v clear_a from_o scripture_n history_n of_o josephus_n and_o the_o ecclesiastic_a story_n especial_o cent._n magd._n de_fw-fr paenis_fw-la persecutorum_fw-la it_o be_v true_a god_n way_n in_o this_o be_v sovereign_a and_o unsearchable_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n and_o time_n of_o this_o reckon_n sometime_o he_o will_v suffer_v great_a persecuter_n to_o die_v in_o worldly_a credit_n and_o peace_n as_o nebuchadnezar_n do_v and_o in_o late_a time_n the_o duke_n of_o alva_n the_o great_a persecuter_n in_o the_o low_a country_n sometime_o he_o will_v pardon_v the_o persecuter_n as_o he_o do_v manasseh_n yet_o ordinary_o do_v he_o manifest_v his_o displeasure_n even_o before_o the_o world_n by_o temporal_a plague_n of_o infamy_n and_o judgement_n upon_o they_o or_o other_o as_o may_v make_v the_o world_n know_v that_o he_o abhor_v that_o sin_n such_o be_v god_n thrust_v nebuchadnezar_n for_o a_o time_n to_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n such_o be_v god_n plague_v of_o manasseh_n for_o his_o blood_n in_o his_o own_o imprisonment_n and_o in_o denude_v his_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n this_o proceed_v partly_o from_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o persecution_n partly_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o god_n be_v more_o eminent_o and_o singular_o engage_v against_o it_o he_o be_v in_o some_o manner_n persecute_v in_o his_o people_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n sound_v always_o with_o that_o word_n before_o god_n which_o zachariah_n the_o son_n of_o jehojada_n express_v at_o his_o death_n 2_o chro._n 24.22_o the_o lord_n look_v upon_o it_o and_o require_v it_o this_o be_v the_o language_n of_o their_o blood_n even_o then_o when_o their_o tongue_n may_v be_v pray_v with_o stephen_n act._n 7.60_o lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n obs._n 2._o that_o god_n people_n may_v continue_v long_o under_o and_o be_v bring_v unto_o great_a strait_n by_o persecution_n as_o this_o cry_n import_v and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o former_a three_o seal_n make_v it_o appear_v for_o until_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n from_o the_o entry_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o the_o world_n the_o church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n and_o some_o odds_o be_v under_o persecution_n and_o have_v little_a breathe_a time_n for_o these_o many_o year_n which_o be_v evident_a from_o story_n wherein_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v clear_a 1._o that_o during_o that_o time_n the_o church_n be_v waste_v by_o ten_o state_v persecution_n the_o first_o by_o nero_n which_o begin_v anno_fw-la 67._o the_o second_o by_o domitian_n anno_fw-la 90._o the_o three_o by_o trajan_n continue_v as_o be_v write_v for_o 19_o year_n it_o begin_v anno_fw-la 100_o the_o four_o be_v under_o hadrian_n and_o ant._n pius_n as_o be_v reckon_v by_o some_o and_o begin_v anno_fw-la 126._o the_o five_o by_o antoninus_n philosophus_fw-la and_o his_o colleague_n l._n a._n verus_n beginning_n anno_fw-la 168._o the_o six_o be_v under_o s●verus_n which_o begin_v in_o the_o year_n 208._o the_o seven_o be_v under_o maximinus_n 236._o the_o eight_o be_v under_o decius_n 251._o the_o nine_o under_o gallus_n and_o volusianus_n 258._o the_o ten_o under_o dioclesian_n anno_fw-la 300._o or_o thereabouts_o these_o persecution_n be_v so_o reckon_v by_o some_o who_o account_v not_o that_o persecution_n of_o aurelianus_n to_o be_v one_o because_o his_o edict_n be_v immediate_o recall_v he_o be_v terrify_v by_o god_n by_o a_o terrible_a thunder_n in_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o his_o subscribe_v the_o same_o upon_o which_o he_o afterward_o befriend_v christian_n so_o as_o he_o interpose_v his_o authority_n for_o make_v effectual_a the_o sentence_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n against_o samosatenus_fw-la other_o again_o who_o reckon_v this_o of_o aurelianus_n one_o omit_v that_o four_o under_o hadrian_n and_o ant._n pius_n either_o because_o they_o account_v they_o one_o with_o that_o of_o trajan's_n there_o be_v no_o considerable_a interruption_n betwixt_o they_o or_o because_o they_o be_v soon_o stay_v than_o other_o be_v this_o make_v the_o difference_n among_o the_o writer_n who_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o number_n of_o ten_o be_v make_v to_o vary_v in_o the_o application_n of_o they_o yet_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o general_a that_o there_o be_v at_o least_o ten_o distinct_a persecution_n purposely_o raise_v against_o christian_n during_o that_o time_n which_o be_v put_v together_o will_v take_v up_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o these_o 300._o year_n a_o second_o thing_n clear_a from_o story_n be_v that_o even_o during_o the_o intervall_n of_o these_o persecution_n when_o the_o sword_n be_v not_o rage_v by_o authority_n against_o christian_n yet_o by_o tumult_n and_o insurrection_n among_o the_o people_n and_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o inferior_a governor_n who_o be_v either_o actor_n in_o or_o conniver_n at_o or_o negligent_a of_o the_o punish_n of_o such_o thing_n the_o church_n be_v still_o suffer_v in_o this_o manner_n be_v stephen_n stone_v by_o the_o people_n act._n 7._o james_n be_v behead_v and_o peter_n be_v imprison_v by_o herod_n act._n 12._o thus_o paul_n and_o the_o apostle_n often_o suffer_v in_o their_o journeying_n even_o before_o public_a persecution_n be_v stir_v by_o nero_n and_o thus_o it_o continue_v almost_o through_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n when_o the_o law_n seem_v most_o favourable_a unto_o christian_n there_o be_v all_o that_o time_n no_o emperor_n christian_a to_o own_o christian_n in_o their_o suffering_n save_o one_o philippus_n who_o reign_v but_o few_o year_n be_v himself_o and_o his_o family_n murder_v by_o decius_n who_o raise_v the_o eight_o persecution_n obs._n 3_o that_o god_n people_n in_o a_o holy_a way_n may_v pray_v for_o vengeance_n upon_o persecuter_n as_o be_v often_o use_v in_o the_o psalm_n not_o from_o self_n revenge_n or_o from_o a_o carnal_a spirit_n but_o from_o love_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o vindicate_a of_o themselves_o and_o the_o truth_n maintain_v by_o they_o and_o scare_v of_o man_n from_o this_o sin_n of_o persecution_n and_o the_o hazard_n that_o follow_v upon_o it_o obs._n 4._o that_o god_n may_v suffer_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o saint_n for_o a_o long_a time_n to_o be_v unpunished_a as_o if_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o their_o prayer_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o effect_n obs._n 5._o even_o then_o when_o god_n seem_v to_o neglect_v his_o people_n and_o to_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o their_o prayer_n he_o be_v holy_a and_o true_a and_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v so_o though_o sense_n will_v say_v the_o contrary_a faith_n ought_v to_o lay_v this_o ground_n at_o the_o entry_n lord_n thou_o be_v holy_a and_o true_a etc._n etc._n from_o the_o answer_n vers_fw-la 11._o observe_v 1._o that_o though_o god_n do_v not_o instant_o grant_v the_o particular_n that_o his_o people_n do_v pray_v for_o yet_o their_o prayer_n be_v not_o lose_v here_o the_o thing_n seek_v be_v delay_v yet_o a_o comfortable_a return_n of_o their_o prayer_n be_v make_v out_o unto_o they_o and_o their_o prayer_n be_v not_o without_o fruit_n even_o for_o the_o time_n obs._n 2._o god_n peremptory_a decree_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n be_v not_o inconsistent_a yea_o his_o decree_n may_v aim_v at_o one_o thing_n and_o the_o particular_a prayed-for_a by_o his_o people_n as_o it_o be_v circumstantiate_v aim_v at_o another_o thing_n upon_o the_o matter_n inconsistent_a with_o that_o you_o may_v these_o prayer_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o they_o in_o they_o as_o be_v clear_a here_o and_o in_o abraham_n pray_v for_o the_o blessing_n to_o ishmael_n while_o god_n have_v appoint_v it_o for_o another_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o our_o prayer_n and_o our_o practice_n be_v accept_v not_o because_o they_o be_v conform_v to_o god_n secret_a will_n and_o decree_n but_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o his_o will_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n which_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o duty_n obs._n 3_o though_o prayer_n prevail_v not_o to_o alter_v god_n decree_n which_o must_v stand_v yet_o prayer_n may_v procure_v much_o present_a quietness_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o time_n god_n decree_n be_v so_o wise_o order_v for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o people_n that_o it_o be_v no_o advantage_n but_o prejudice_n to_o they_o to_o have_v they_o alter_v obs._n 4._o the_o most_o rage_a persecution_n have_v their_o bound_n set_v by_o god_n the_o number_n of_o martyr_n be_v determine_v and_o all_o the_o persecuter_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n shall_v not_o exceed_v in_o one_o person_n which_o as_o it_o do_v notable_o hold_v forth_o god_n sovereignty_n and_o providence_n in_o the_o great_a confusion_n of_o the_o world_n so_o do_v it_o exceed_o contribute_v to_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n people_n
man_n to_o man_n of_o high_a place_n and_o power_n nor_o to_o man_n of_o riches_n wit_n and_o policy_n but_o to_o god_n it_o be_v his_o peculiar_a property_n and_o prerogative_n and_o what_o less_o than_o have_v god_n people_n at_o one_o time_n nor_o at_o another_o since_o he_o have_v salvation_n at_o command_n and_o he_o can_v give_v it_o commission_n when_o he_o will_v and_o when_o he_o commissionate_v it_o it_o will_v come_v psal._n 68.20_o our_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o salvation_n salvation_n hold_v of_o he_o and_o to_o who_o but_o to_o he_o belong_v the_o issue_n from_o death_n let_v none_o then_o ascribe_v it_o to_o any_o other_o nor_o seek_v it_o elsewhere_o nor_o let_v any_o be_v discourage_v when_o they_o desire_v it_o it_o be_v in_o a_o good_a hand_n isa._n 43.11_o he_o will_v not_o give_v his_o glory_n to_o another_o he_o bestow_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n purchase_v it_o 2._o let_v it_o comfort_n god_n people_n in_o a_o anxious_a time_n the_o faith_n of_o god_n have_v salvation_n in_o his_o hand_n may_v guard_v the_o heart_n and_o keep_v from_o much_o perplex_v anxiety_n that_o folk_n be_v put_v to_o under_o difficulty_n psal._n 3.8_o salvation_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n thy_o blessing_n be_v upon_o thy_o people_n 9_o salvation_n to_o our_o god_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n they_o ascribe_v it_o to_o he_o that_o hold_v it_o of_o he_o obs._n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o heaven-like_a than_o a_o humble_a hold_v of_o salvation_n of_o god_n and_o ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o this_o be_v heaven_n song_n heaven_n be_v full_a of_o it_o to_o denude_v ourselves_o and_o hold_v all_o of_o free_a grace_n to_o ascribe_v salvation_n free_o to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o lamb._n and_o as_o this_o become_v glory_n well_o so_o it_o glorifi_v god_n while_o folk_n be_v labour_v under_o a_o body_n of_o death_n to_o say_v it_o be_v not_o to_o they_o but_o to_o he_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o salvation_n belong_v to_o wash_v their_o hand_n of_o any_o good_a give_v they_o or_o that_o they_o may_v expect_v to_o acknowledge_v his_o freedom_n in_o that_o which_o they_o be_v to_o get_v as_o well_o as_o his_o riches_n in_o that_o which_o they_o have_v get_v this_o be_v the_o like_a life_n to_o heaven_n to_o be_v still_o praise_v free_a grace_n 10._o heaven_n and_o the_o song_n that_o will_v be_v in_o heaven_n may_v comfort_v god_n people_n even_o in_o time_n under_o these_o difficulty_n they_o meet_v with_o here_o the_o hope_n of_o what_o be_v come_v may_v ally_v and_o only_o can_v ally_v the_o bitterness_n of_o what_o be_v present_a lecture_n v._n vers._n 11._o and_o all_o the_o angel_n stand_v round_o about_o the_o throne_n and_o about_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o fall_v before_o the_o throne_n on_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n 12._o say_v amen_o blessing_n and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o may_v be_v unto_o our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n 13._o and_o one_o of_o the_o elder_n answer_v say_v unto_o i_o what_o be_v these_o which_o be_v array_v in_o white_a robe_n and_o whence_o come_v they_o 14._o and_o i_o say_v unto_o he_o sir_n thou_o know_v we_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o these_o word_n be_v to_o give_v a_o little_a glimpse_n of_o the_o glorious_a outgate_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v have_v after_o the_o storm_n of_o antichrist_n and_o these_o corrupt_a teacher_n that_o be_v come_v to_o lay_v the_o church_n low_o this_o outgate_n be_v 1._o general_o represent_v to_o john_n from_o vers_fw-la 9_o to_o vers_n 13._o and_o then_o more_o particular_o explicate_v by_o a_o elder_a to_o john_n from_o vers_fw-la 13._o to_o the_o end_n the_o first_o have_v two_o part_n the_o first_o whereof_o be_v the_o representation_n of_o the_o redeem_a church_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n with_o white_a robe_n and_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o a_o sweet_a song_n in_o their_o mouth_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o 11._o and_o 12._o verse_n there_o be_v a_o further_a enlargement_n and_o explication_n of_o that_o glorious_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o saint_n happiness_n by_o bring_v in_o all_o the_o angel_n admire_v god_n goodness_n to_o his_o church_n and_o take_v a_o share_n of_o the_o song_n of_o praise_n with_o they_o it_o be_v such_o a_o glorious_a piece_n of_o work_n as_o will_v serve_v not_o only_o all_o the_o saint_n but_o the_o angel_n also_o so_o then_o in_o these_o two_o verse_n be_v set_v down_o the_o angel_n approbation_n of_o and_o concurrence_n with_o the_o redeemed_z church_n the_o scope_n of_o it_o be_v to_o show_v 1._o the_o harmony_n that_o be_v among_o saint_n and_o angel_n in_o their_o praise_n god_n 2._o to_o show_v how_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a a_o ground_n of_o praise_n a_o flourish_a and_o victorious_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n have_v in_o it_o and_o that_o by_o it_o god_n give_v evidence_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o angel_n principality_n and_o power_n etc._n etc._n eph._n 3.10_o 3._o to_o show_v that_o angel_n delight_v in_o the_o church_n flourish_v and_o in_o the_o thrive_a of_o the_o gospel_n luke_n 15.7_o there_o be_v joy_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n so_o here_o by_o hold_v forth_o the_o incoming_a of_o many_o sinner_n and_o the_o spread_a of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n all_o the_o angel_n be_v make_v cheerful_a at_o the_o news_n of_o it_o 4._o to_o show_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o work_n of_o praise_n it_o will_v and_o do_v take_v up_o angel_n to_o go_v about_o it_o it_o be_v a_o work_n become_v even_o they_o the_o glorious_a condition_n abide_v the_o church_n shall_v furnish_v all_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n matter_n of_o praise_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o such_o a_o glorious_a outgate_n might_n exceed_o comfort_v john_n and_o other_o who_o be_v to_o live_v under_o those_o difficulty_n more_o particular_o this_o company_n of_o angel_n be_v set_v out_o 1._o in_o their_o posture_n they_o stand_v and_o they_o be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o same_o posture_n chap._n 5._o the_o reason_n of_o their_o stand_n be_v to_o show_v not_o only_o their_o reverence_v of_o god_n but_o their_o great_a dependence_n on_o god_n as_o servant_n wait_v for_o direction_n from_o he_o and_o their_o readiness_n to_o obey_v what_o order_n he_o give_v they_o it_o signify_v also_o their_o privilege_n to_o stand_v there_o deut._n 10.8_o 2._o they_o be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o stand_v it_o be_v about_o the_o throne_n elder_n and_o beast_n as_o we_o show_v chap._n 6._o to_o signify_v the_o end_n of_o their_o service_n it_o be_v to_o watch_v over_o the_o church_n that_o be_v between_o god_n throne_n and_o they_o they_o be_v without_o as_o a_o guard_n and_o wall_n to_o the_o redeem_a church_n they_o be_v minister_a spirit_n all_o of_o they_o for_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n heb._n 1.14_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v all_o the_o angel_n they_o surround_v the_o throne_n and_o the_o church_n keep_v they_o in_o and_o keep_v out_o from_o they_o any_o thing_n that_o may_v annoy_v they_o and_o consequent_o they_o be_v round_o about_o the_o innumerable_a multitude_n mention_v before_o vers_fw-la 9_o who_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n yea_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o these_o be_v here_o omit_v though_o that_o be_v their_o place_n and_o elder_n and_o beast_n mention_v to_o stand_v there_o where_o former_o they_o stand_v must_v be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o elder_n or_o beast_n see_v the_o place_n and_o guard_n be_v all_o one_o and_o the_o distinction_n that_o be_v put_v between_o they_o be_v but_o as_o a_o difference_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n signify_v by_o the_o elder_n from_o such_o a_o particular_a company_n bring_v through_o antichrist_n tribulation_n vers_fw-la 14_o and_o 15._o and_o at_o such_o a_o time_n and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o in_o these_o respect_n distinguish_v from_o the_o whole_a which_o strengthen_v the_o exposition_n we_o give_v before_o of_o these_o elder_n represent_v the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o probable_o they_o have_v not_o be_v omit_v if_o they_o have_v be_v a_o party_n distinct_a from_o the_o church_n otherways_o than_o a_o part_n be_v from_o the_o whole_a neither_o can_v any_o other_o reason_n be_v give_v why_o these_o elder_n do_v not_o join_v in_o praise_n with_o the_o church_n or_o angel_n as_o chap._n 4_o and_o 5_o etc._n etc._n when_o the_o praise_n be_v so_o solemn_a but_o because_o their_o join_n or_o praise_n be_v former_o express_v by_o the_o company_n
partaker_n of_o this_o bless_a estate_n by_o which_o also_o they_o be_v say_v to_o prevail_v chap._n 12._o that_o red_a blood_n can_v make_v bloody_a soul_n white_a it_o be_v of_o such_o a_o excellent_a virtue_n these_o folk_n when_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v worship_v idol_n and_o all_o that_o profess_a christianity_n be_v follow_v a_o self_n righteousness_n and_o absolution_n by_o penance_n indulgence_n etc._n etc._n flee_v to_o jesus_n christ_n for_o refuge_n and_o they_o by_o this_o righteousness_n and_o satisfaction_n alone_o be_v make_v white_a pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o bring_v to_o this_o happy_a condition_n and_o not_o by_o any_o thing_n in_o themselves_o though_o they_o keep_v themselves_o free_a from_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n yet_o this_o effect_n be_v not_o attribute_v to_o that_o but_o to_o their_o wash_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o three_o their_o present_a happy_a condition_n be_v enlarge_v in_o the_o last_o three_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o set_v down_o only_o as_o a_o consequent_a of_o their_o suffering_n but_o flow_v from_o their_o make_a use_n of_o the_o lamb_n blood_n as_o the_o cause_n thereof_o therefore_o that_o be_v not_o because_o they_o suffer_v such_o tribulation_n but_o because_o they_o wash_v their_o robe_n and_o make_v they_o white_a in_o christ_n blood_n their_o happy_a condition_n be_v set_v out_o in_o these_o follow_a circumstance_n or_o step_n which_o show_v what_o a_o happiness_n they_o be_v bring_v unto_o 1._o in_o the_o place_n of_o enjoy_v their_o happiness_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o temple_n which_o be_v in_o his_o church_n here_o begin_v by_o fellowship_n in_o his_o ordinance_n and_o in_o heaven_n complete_o when_o they_o be_v present_v before_o god_n throne_n in_o glory_n 2._o in_o their_o service_n and_o work_v and_o the_o un-interruptednesse_a of_o it_o they_o serve_v he_o night_n and_o day_n and_o have_v place_n among_o angel_n that_o stand_v by_o zech_n 3._o free_v from_o selfishnesse_n and_o a_o body_n of_o death_n and_o not_o do_v this_o service_n by_o fit_n but_o constant_o allude_v probable_o to_o the_o priest_n which_o in_o their_o course_n be_v admit_v night_n and_o day_n to_o be_v in_o the_o temple_n psal._n 134.1_o this_o be_v a_o special_a part_n of_o their_o happiness_n that_o enimity_n now_o in_o they_o against_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v take_v away_o that_o their_o delight_n therein_o be_v not_o mar_v and_o this_o be_v bring_v in_o 1._o to_o show_v their_o privilege_n that_o they_o do_v need_v no_o priest_n nor_o intervenient_a mean_n to_o help_v they_o 2._o to_o show_v there_o be_v no_o intermission_n in_o their_o service_n no_o whore_v from_o god_n but_o as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n so_o do_v they_o the_o will_n of_o god_n cheerful_o and_o delightsom_o a_o three_o step_n of_o their_o happy_a condition_n be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o vers_n 15._o and_o be_v set_v out_o by_o enjoy_v of_o god_n company_n which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o that_o bless_a condition_n he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n shall_v dwell_v among_o they_o that_o be_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v at_o a_o distance_n with_o god_n nor_o he_o at_o a_o distance_n with_o they_o but_o he_o shall_v make_v himself_o familiar_o know_v to_o they_o and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o intermission_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o joy_n they_o shall_v not_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n by_o start_n but_o he_o shall_v constant_o and_o full_o manifest_v himself_o as_o dwell_v in_o one_o house_n with_o they_o and_o they_o in_o his_o company_n for_o ever_o this_o word_n ●welling_v be_v to_o sojourn_v in_o a_o tent_n speak_v of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o fl●sh_n joh._n 1.14_o which_o may_v look_v to_o god_n make_v himself_o manifest_a in_o ordinance_n till_o this_o tent_n be_v take_v down_o thus_o it_o agree_v to_o the_o church-militant_a wherein_o no_o such_o interruption_n of_o god_n presence_n shall_v be_v after_o that_o time_n as_o have_v be_v before_o under_o antichrist_n the_o four_o step_n or_o part_n of_o their_o happy_a condition_n be_v in_o vers_n 16._o wherein_o their_o happiness_n be_v set_v out_o by_o their_o freedom_n from_o all_o cross_n and_o natural_a defect_n and_o infirmity_n and_o man_n violence_n there_o be_v neither_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n nor_o scorch_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v no_o persecution_n if_o figurative_o take_v as_o matth._n 13._o nor_o distemper_n of_o air_n or_o weather_n nor_o any_o thing_n hurtful_a or_o noisome_a to_o the_o body_n if_o proper_o take_v there_o be_v by_o the_o former_a phrase_n no_o sinful_a defect_n and_o now_o there_o be_v no_o sinless_a defect_n which_o christ_n be_v subject_a unto_o while_o he_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n such_o as_o hunger_n or_o cold_a or_o weariness_n there_o be_v nothing_o of_o that_o kind_n in_o heaven_n nothing_o to_o distemper_v their_o happiness_n or_o to_o impair_v their_o blessedness_n not_o the_o least_o blast_n that_o flow_v from_o their_o natural_a infirmity_n within_o nor_o from_o without_o by_o annoyance_n of_o the_o weather_n as_o it_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n the_o five_o be_v a_o main_a step_n of_o their_o happiness_n and_o it_o be_v give_v as_o the_o great_a ground_n and_o reason_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o serve_v to_o confirm_v it_o vers_n 17._o for_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o throne_n stall_n lead_v they_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o can_v be_v no_o otherways_o for_o the_o lamb_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o who_o be_v god_n on_o the_o throne_n equal_a to_o the_o father_n his_o care_n over_o they_o will_v be_v such_o as_o will_v admit_v no_o want_n but_o will_v furnish_v all_o good_a and_o this_o be_v set_v out_o in_o these_o two_o 1._o he_o shall_v feed_v they_o which_o comprehend_v all_o care_n over_o they_o and_o tenderness_n to_o they_o in_o he_o and_o also_o take_v in_o all_o provision_n needful_a for_o their_o well-being_n in_o provide_v for_o they_o and_o feast_v they_o and_o over-seeing_a they_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o any_o hurt_n as_o a_o shepherd_n do_v his_o flock_n psal._n 23._o he_o shall_v take_v they_o in_o his_o special_a guide_n without_o interveen_v of_o ordinance_n or_o minister_n 2._o it_o be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o excellent_a pasture_n he_o shall_v feed_v they_o in_o not_o at_o puddle_n or_o stream_n nor_o every_o fountain_n but_o live_a fountain_n of_o water_n which_o dry_v not_o up_o able_a to_o quench_v all_o thirst_n and_o to_o cool_v from_o all_o heat_n call_v living_n fountain_n 1._o in_o opposition_n to_o all_o earthly_a consolation_n which_o be_v but_o as_o stand_v and_o dead_a puddle_n or_o cistern_n or_o stream_n at_o best_a but_o there_o be_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n for_o evermore_o psal._n 16._o fountain_n and_o live_a fountain_n 2._o to_o show_v the_o diversity_n and_o abundance_n of_o consolation_n that_o be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o will_v be_v get_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n in_o heaven_n and_o 3._o live_a fountain_n to_o show_v the_o inexhaustiblnesse_n of_o they_o it_o be_v close_v with_o a_o word_n to_o confirm_v the_o former_a god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n that_o be_v god_n shall_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o their_o misery_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v neither_o sigh_n nor_o tear_v there_o nor_o cause_n of_o tear_n though_o they_o have_v never_o be_v in_o their_o life_n without_o tear_n on_o their_o cheek_n yet_o no_o soon_o shall_v they_o enter_v in_o that_o bless_a place_n but_o god_n presence_n and_o a_o glimpse_n of_o his_o favour_n shall_v so_o wipe_v they_o away_o that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v ever_o stick_v there_o any_o more_o nor_o be_v see_v there_o again_o there_o be_v none_o among_o that_o happy_a company_n that_o either_o actual_o weep_v or_o shall_v have_v cause_n or_o occasion_n of_o weep_v or_o sorrow_n for_o ever_o there_o be_v some_o of_o these_o excellent_a expression_n apply_v by_o isaiah_n to_o the_o church_n after_o its_o captivity_n as_o may_v be_v see_v isa._n 49.10_o etc._n etc._n and_o 25.8_o and_o 35.10_o and_o 51.11_o etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o may_v not_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o scope_n to_o look_v upon_o this_o description_n as_o point_v at_o the_o begin_v victory_n of_o these_o saint_n here_o but_o perfect_v in_o heaven_n as_o we_o show_v you_o at_o the_o entry_n on_o this_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n however_o more_o literal_o it_o agree_v to_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v draw_v our_o observation_n most_o from_o that_o consideration_n of_o they_o and_o only_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o church_n happy_a estate_n here_o 1._o as_o begin_v 2._o as_o comparative_a with_o former_a strait_n 3._o because_o in_o itself_o excellent_a and_o eminent_a by_o
heat_n of_o persecution_n no_o violence_n nor_o cry_n in_o these_o strait_n no_o complaint_n of_o plunder_v or_o oppression_n no_o sequestration_n no_o quartering_n there_o no_o poverty_n not_o a_o poor_a person_n among_o all_o that_o company_n entry_n into_o heaven_n put_v a_o close_a to_o all_o these_o none_o of_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o follow_v a_o believer_n further_o than_o the_o port_n of_o the_o city_n it_o must_v then_o certain_o be_v good_a to_o be_v there_o the_o lamb_n his_o sweet_a company_n and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o compleat_v all_o we_o hold_v both_o grace_n and_o glory_n of_o he_o we_o have_v a_o special_a relation_n to_o he_o he_o be_v in_o our_o own_o nature_n there_o god-man_n in_o one_o person_n the_o great_a glimpse_n of_o the_o godhead_n will_v probable_o be_v attain_v in_o he_o and_o all_o tear_n will_v be_v wipe_v way_n whatever_o may_v comfort_v a_o believer_n will_v be_v give_v and_o what_o disquiet_v a_o believer_n will_v be_v remove_v there_o be_v three_o thing_n that_o disquiet_v a_o believer_n that_o will_v not_o be_v in_o heaven_n 1._o sin_v and_o interrupt_v of_o god_n service_n and_o neither_o ●in_a nor_o tentation_n will_v be_v there_o no_o devil_n nor_o corrupt_a nature_n flesh_n and_o blood_n enter_v not_o there_o 2._o the_o interruption_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n favour_n which_o be_v now_o but_o at_o start_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o let_v it_o out_o but_o no_o interruption_n of_o favour_n there_o as_o they_o serve_v he_o day_n and_o night_n so_o he_o dwell_v among_o they_o the_o communion_n be_v constant_a and_o by_o the_o way_n obs._n that_o a_o uninterrupted_a serve_v of_o god_n and_o a_o uninterrupted_a communion_n with_o god_n and_o enjoy_n of_o he_o go_v together_o 3._o outward_a persecution_n and_o want_n pinch_n and_o strait_n none_o of_o these_o do_v follow_v the_o saint_n into_o heaven_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o all_o these_o they_o enjoy_v god_n in_o a_o most_o excellent_a way_n and_o the_o company_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o be_v feast_v by_o live_a fountain_n of_o water_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v more_o delectable_a than_o another_o they_o have_v it_o and_o that_o in_o abundance_n fresh_o flow_v for_o ever_o use_v 1_o long_o in_o a_o holy_a and_o warrantable_a way_n to_o share_v and_o have_v experience_n of_o this_o happy_a condition_n and_o labour_n to_o entertain_v clearness_n of_o right_n and_o interest_n in_o it_o 2._o back_o your_o long_n with_o endeavour_n to_o be_v at_o it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o many_o of_o we_o when_o we_o shall_v yield_v our_o breath_n and_o soul_n do_v find_v that_o we_o have_v look_v on_o heaven_n as_o a_o story_n 3._o mortify_v your_o member_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n what_o be_v all_o idol_n when_o they_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o balance_n for-against_a this_o happiness_n in_o its_o high_a degree_n with_o its_o soul-sweetning_a circumstance_n what_o happiness_n so_o desirable_a as_o this_o or_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o enjoy_n of_o god_n wherein_o there_o be_v perfect_a holiness_n without_o sin_n and_o complete_a happiness_n without_o stop_n or_o interruption_n 4._o be_v comfort_v yourselves_o from_o and_o confirm_v yourselves_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o this_o happiness_n all_o you_o who_o be_v flee_v to_o christ_n for_o refuge_n suppose_v you_o be_v under_o tribulation_n now_o there_o be_v a_o time_n come_v when_o you_o will_v get_v out_o of_o it_o and_o though_o a_o body_n of_o death_n trouble_v you_o and_o want_n oppression_n poverty_n hunger_n nakedness_n etc._n etc._n keep_v you_o at_o under_o yet_o when_o you_o come_v to_o heaven_n you_o shall_v be_v trouble_v with_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n none_o be_v poor_a but_o all_o be_v rich_a there_o none_o be_v naked_a but_o all_o be_v clothe_v with_o white_a robe_n none_o be_v hungry_a but_o all_o feast_v and_o well_o feed_v and_o suppose_v you_o have_v a_o heartless_a time_n here_o yet_o then_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n no_o sin_n nor_o sorrow_n nor_o cause_n nor_o occasion_n of_o it_o the_o result_n of_o all_o this_o be_v to_o commend_v to_o you_o these_o two_o direction_n 1._o see_v all_o this_o happiness_n come_v through_o wash_v in_o the_o lamb_n blood_n think_v much_o of_o believe_v make_v that_o knot_n sure_a it_o be_v that_o upon_o which_o heaven_n hang_v lose_v that_o knot_n and_o heaven_n will_v fall_v by_o from_o you_o this_o carnal_a security_n that_o be_v among_o the_o most_o part_n of_o you_o be_v not_o believe_v search_n and_o try_v your_o condition_n make_v sure_a your_o call_n and_o election_n and_o seek_v to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v sure_a and_o out_o of_o question_n 2._o see_v heaven_n be_v such_o a_o happy_a life_n and_o there_o be_v a_o resemblance_n of_o it_o here_o aim_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o and_o we_o will_v find_v something_o of_o it_o in_o these_o word_n as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o church-militant_a 1._o by_o serve_v god_n and_o by_o holiness_n cease_v from_o sin_n they_o that_o serve_v god_n most_o uninterrupted_o be_v like_a heaven_n count_v it_o your_o happiness_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o serve_v god_n without_o intermission_n the_o more_o spiritual_a constant_a and_o immediate_a our_o service_n be_v the_o more_o it_o be_v like_a heaven_n thus_o we_o enter_v in_o god_n rest_n heb._n 4.10_o when_o we_o cease_v from_o our_o own_o work_n and_o do_v his._n 2._o to_o be_v enjoy_v god_n company_n though_o not_o in_o that_o immediate_a way_n as_o in_o heaven_n yet_o by_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o by_o his_o spirit_n in_o we_o and_o by_o the_o have_v our_o conversation_n lift_v up_o to_o he_o col._n 3.1_o 2._o this_o be_v the_o earnest_n and_o first_o fruit_n of_o glory_n much_o nearness_n and_o communion_n with_o god_n make_v we_o like_o heaven_n the_o like_a thing_n to_o it_o in_o the_o world_n be_v to_o dwell_v in_o he_o and_o with_o he_o 3._o to_o be_v in_o christ_n flock_n under_o his_o care_n and_o tutory_a feed_v by_o he_o and_o lead_v by_o he_o and_o feed_v on_o he_o and_o yield_v ourselves_o up_o to_o he_o 4._o a_o contentedness_n with_o our_o present_a condition_n and_o lot_n in_o the_o world_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o carve_v it_o out_o to_o we_o to_o learn_v in_o every_o estate_n to_o be_v content_a philip._n 4._o in_o the_o enjoy_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n care_n of_o we_o 5._o wainednesse_n of_o affection_n from_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a delight_n not_o engage_a in_o nor_o thirst_v after_o these_o paul_n oppose_v a_o heavenly_a conversation_n to_o this_o phil._n 3.19_o 20._o in_o a_o word_n study_v to_o reach_v a_o further_a length_n in_o holiness_n and_o endeavour_v after_o a_o more_o full_a communion_n with_o god_n and_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n give_v he_o his_o will_n there_o may_v be_v some_o more_o fore-taste_a of_o happiness_n have_v in_o these_o thing_n lord_n make_v we_o serious_a in_o seek_v after_o they_o lecture_n i._n chap._n viii_o vers._n 1._o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o seven_o seal_n there_o be_v silence_n in_o heaven_n about_o the_o space_n of_o half_a a_o hour_n 2._o and_o i_o see_v the_o seven_o angel_n which_o stand_v before_o god_n and_o to_o they_o be_v give_v seven_o trumpet_n 3._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censer_n and_o there_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o much_o incense_n that_o he_o shall_v offer_v it_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n 4._o and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_n which_o come_v with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v up_o before_o god_n out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n we_o have_v hear_v how_o under_o the_o former_a six_o seal_n the_o lord_n have_v be_v reveal_v and_o foreshow_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n here_o on_o earth_n till_o that_o first_o great_a change_n of_o bring_v christianity_n in_o request_n public_o and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v own_v and_o countenance_v by_o authority_n in_o the_o world_n by_o reason_n whereof_o idolater_n and_o persecuter●_n shall_v be_v disow_v and_o discountenance_v so_o far_o the_o six_o seal_n come_v to_o foreshow_v and_o hold_v out_o the_o shake_n and_o overturning_a of_o that_o idolatrous_a world_n and_o bring_v horror_n and_o tremble_a on_o persecuter_n before_o he_o come_v to_o prosecute_v the_o open_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n which_o bring_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n that_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o two_o period_n one_o of_o the_o trumpet_n another_o of_o the_o vial_n he_o hint_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n at_o this_o sad_a storm_n which_o be_v come_v on_o the_o church_n from_o all_o airth_n and_o at_o our_o lord_n step_v in_o to_o hold_v these_o wind_n from_o
down_o some_o thing_n which_o may_v bear_v this_o application_n for_o the_o make_n out_o of_o this_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n and_o worship_v of_o devil_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o shall_v first_o lay_v down_o what_o be_v such_o in_o the_o scripture_n account_n 2._o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v practice_v concern_v their_o image_n and_o worship_n give_v to_o they_o 3._o make_v out_o that_o these_o practice_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o worship_v of_o idol_n the_o work_n of_o man_n hand_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o our_o purpose_n to_o enlarge_v the_o first_o two_o in_o speak_v either_o of_o all_o the_o idolatry_n which_o the_o scripture_n condemn_v or_o yet_o of_o all_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o come_v in_o under_o this_o guilt_n but_o so_o much_o as_o relate_v to_o image_n especial_o for_o the_o first_o the_o scripture_n reckon_v and_o condemn_v a_o twofold_a idolatry_n in_o reference_n to_o image_n 1._o when_o the_o image_n itself_o be_v account_v god_n and_o worship_v as_o such_o this_o idolatry_n be_v proper_o against_o the_o first_o command_n and_o be_v general_o condemn_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o heathen_a the_o second_o sort_n of_o idolatry_n be_v when_o the_o image_n themselves_o be_v not_o worship_v as_o have_v any_o godhead_n proper_o in_o themselves_o but_o as_o they_o relate_v to_o represent_v and_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o he_o who_o be_v account_v god_n so_o that_o the_o motive_n move_v to_o worship_n be_v pretend_v respect_n to_o the_o god_n represent_v by_o they_o which_o we_o will_v find_v both_o among_o heathen_n and_o among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o one_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o their_o idol_n not_o as_o god_n themselves_o but_o as_o intend_v to_o worship_v their_o god_n in_o these_o and_o by_o these_o yet_o be_v they_o common_o condemn_v in_o the_o scripture_n not_o only_o for_o worship_v their_o suppose_a god_n but_o for_o worship_v the_o image_n whereby_o they_o do_v represent_v they_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o people_n of_o god_n profess_v to_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n and_o yet_o for_o do_v it_o by_o image_n and_o to_o image_n be_v condemn_v for_o worship_v of_o image_n themselves_o as_o the_o after_o instance_n will_v clear_v this_o sort_n of_o idolatrous_a worship_n may_v be_v two_o way_n try_v 1._o when_o we_o worship_v he_o with_o such_o worship_n as_o idolater_n use_v to_o their_o idol_n thus_o the_o represent_v of_o the_o true_a god_n by_o image_n make_v high_a place_n and_o grove_n to_o he_o be_v condemn_v deut._n 4.15_o 16_o 25._o and_o deut._n 12._o vers_fw-la 31_o 32._o and_o 2_o chron._n 33._o vers_fw-la 17._o where_o sacrifice_v in_o the_o high_a place_n though_o to_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n be_v mark_v as_o a_o relict_n of_o their_o idolatry_n 2._o it_o may_v be_v try_v by_o this_o when_o religious_a worship_n alone_o due_a to_o god_n be_v give_v to_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o the_o true_a god_n though_o it_o be_v to_o instrument_n and_o mean_n appoint_v by_o himself_o such_o idolatry_n be_v condemn_v in_o cornelius_n act._n 10._o and_o in_o john_n revel_v 19_o and_o the_o people_n go_v a_o whore_v after_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n much_o more_o when_o that_o worship_n be_v give_v to_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o make_v use_n of_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o his_o appointment_n as_o image_n of_o angel_n saint_n or_o of_o the_o lord_n himself_o thus_o it_o have_v be_v idolatry_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o have_v worship_v the_o table_n of_o stone_n pot_n of_o manna_n moses_n rod_n paschal_n lamb_n or_o such_o thing_n ordinary_o or_o extraordinary_o make_v use_n of_o by_o god_n these_o proper_o come_v under_o the_o second_o command_n whereby_o we_o be_v discharge_v not_o only_o to_o worship_v false_a god_n or_o image_n as_o god_n but_o also_o be_v inhibit_v to_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n any_o way_n not_o prescribe_v by_o he_o but_o especial_o by_o image_n if_o it_o be_v question_v what_o this_o religious_a worship_n be_v we_o take_v it_o up_o thus_o 1._o that_o worship_n which_o the_o scripture_n only_o appropriate_v to_o the_o true_a god_n as_o pray_v and_o vow_v to_o he_o swear_v by_o his_o name_n build_v temple_n altar_n etc._n etc._n seek_v the_o restore_n of_o health_n and_o such_o like_a 2._o we_o call_v that_o religious_a worship_n which_o idolater_n use_v to_o give_v to_o their_o suppose_a god_n such_o as_o to_o kiss_v a_o image_n hos._n 13.2_o to_o sacrifice_v and_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o set_v light_n before_o they_o and_o appoint_v priest_n for_o they_o judg._n 17._o and_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v that_o idolatry_n act._n 14._o of_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n for_o these_o thing_n have_v ever_o be_v count_v religious_a by_o man_n and_o give_v to_o idol_n upon_o that_o account_n neither_o ever_o have_v it_o be_v or_o can_v it_o be_v give_v to_o image_n upon_o another_o account_n 3._o when_o the_o worship_n be_v not_o civil_a it_o must_v be_v account_v religious_a as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o as_o if_o the_o act_n end_n and_o other_o circumstance_n be_v religious_a the_o action_n or_o worship_n itself_o must_v be_v so_o also_o as_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o bow_v the_o knee_n in_o a_o salutation_n to_o a_o man_n it_o be_v another_o thing_n to_o bow_v in_o prayer_n and_o that_o before_o a_o image_n to_o do_v it_o occasional_o and_o in_o such_o place_n and_o purposely_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o religion_n and_o worship_n to_o bow_v the_o knee_n at_o a_o table_n or_o before_o a_o image_n be_v one_o thing_n but_o to_o do_v it_o before_o a_o image_n set_v up_o for_o a_o religious_a end_n at_o a_o table_n upon_o which_o christ_n be_v esteem_v to_o be_v real_o present_a be_v another_o that_o we_o may_v be_v distinct_a in_o the_o second_o we_o shall_v 1._o consider_v what_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o papist_n 2._o what_o be_v their_o doctrine_n concern_v this_o sort_n of_o worship_n and_o that_o in_o so_o far_o as_o be_v uncontroverted_a by_o they_o 1._o we_o will_v find_v infinite_a number_n of_o image_n frame_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n distinct_o of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n the_o cross_n angel_n saint_n etc._n etc._n 2._o we_o will_v find_v they_o in_o their_o practice_n give_v great_a worship_n to_o all_o these_o kneeling_z to_o they_o discover_v themselves_o before_o they_o offer_v oblation_n and_o put_v up_o prayer_n to_o they_o build_v temple_n and_o sanctify_v of_o they_o by_o these_o carrying_z they_o in_o procession_n etc._n etc._n 3._o we_o will_v find_v a_o worship_n give_v to_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n as_o pray_v dedicate_a of_o temple_n swear_v by_o they_o seek_v their_o intercession_n of_o such_o kind_n be_v to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n as_o follow_v ora_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la sancta_fw-la dei_fw-la genitrix_fw-la ut_fw-la digni_fw-la efficiamur_fw-la promissionibus_fw-la christi_fw-la dulcis_fw-la amica_fw-la dei_fw-la rosa_fw-la vernans_fw-la stella_fw-la decora_fw-la ju_n memor_fw-la est●_n mei_fw-la dum_fw-la mortis_fw-la venerit_fw-la hora._n ave_fw-la santissima_fw-la mater_fw-la dei_fw-la regina_fw-la coeli_fw-la porta_fw-la paradisi_fw-la domina_fw-la mundi_fw-la libera_fw-la i_o ab_fw-la omni_fw-la malo_fw-la ora_fw-la pro_fw-la peccato_fw-la meo_fw-la that_o be_v o_o holy_a mother_n of_o god_n pray_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v worthy_a of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ._n sweet_a friend_n of_o god_n the_o pleasant_a rose_n and_o glorious_a star_n be_v mindful_a of_o i_o when_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n shall_v come_v hail_v most_o holy_a mother_n of_o god_n the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n the_o port_n of_o paradise_n the_o lady_n of_o the_o world_n deliver_v i_o from_o all_o evil_a pray_v for_o my_o sin_n and_o infinite_a number_n of_o this_o kind_a to_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o roman_a breviarie_n that_o be_v call_v psalterium_fw-la marianum_n a_o compend_v whereof_o be_v set_v down_o by_o chemnitius_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n part_n 3._o the_o veneratione_n sanctorum_fw-la &_o corum_fw-la invocatione_n so_o be_v also_o their_o prayer_n to_o other_o saint_n as_o to_o elizabeth_n eia_n mater_fw-la nos_fw-la agnosce_fw-la etc._n etc._n o_o mother_n acknowledge_v we_o etc._n etc._n to_o nicolas_n credo_fw-la sancte_fw-la nicolas_n tuis_fw-la i_o procibus_fw-la esse_fw-la salvandum_fw-la id●o_fw-la te_fw-la clamo_fw-la etc._n etc._n serua_n i_o supplicem_fw-la famulum_fw-la tuum_fw-la amice_fw-la dei_fw-la nicolae_fw-la de_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la angustiis_fw-la &_o tribulationibus_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o te_fw-la confidit_fw-la anima_fw-la mea_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la t●_n i_o salvet_fw-la qui_fw-la te_fw-la sibi_fw-la elegit_fw-la i_o believe_v holy_a nicolas_n to_o
chap._n 9_o v._n 15._o 2._o to_o show_v that_o their_o prophesy_v be_v a_o daily_a work_n and_o task_n 3._o to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o day_n as_o tread_v under_o foot_n be_v a_o work_n of_o darkness_n therefore_o count_v by_o month_n which_o the_o moon_n order_v 4._o it_o be_v year_n to_o show_v it_o will_v be_v of_o a_o considerable_a continuance_n it_o be_v day_n and_o month_n for_o encouragement_n that_o they_o may_v know_v these_o evil_a time_n shall_v have_v a_o end_n 5._o the_o alteration_n of_o month_n into_o day_n will_v help_v to_o discern_v how_o many_o day_n be_v to_o be_v assign_v to_o every_o month_n for_o make_v up_o the_o total_a last_o it_o be_v mark_v that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o they_o thus_o to_o do_v vers_n 3._o which_o hold_v forth_o the_o special_a commission_n they_o have_v and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o enter_v that_o station_n but_o also_o to_o continue_v therein_o imply_v withal_o assistance_n and_o success_n beyond_o what_o can_v be_v expect_v in_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o testimony_n this_o power_n look_v especial_o to_o the_o authority_n that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o to_o denounce_v his_o judgement_n against_o antichrist_n follower_n with_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o event_n thereof_o and_o that_o both_o temporal_a in_o due_a time_n to_o be_v fulfil_v but_o eternal_a always_o according_a to_o that_o denounciation_n chap._n 14.9.10_o as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o they_o have_v it_o commit_v to_o they_o at_o their_o abitrement_n to_o use_v the_o key_n even_o extraordinary_a prophet_n do_v not_o work_v miracle_n and_o pprophecy_n in_o foretell_v of_o event_n at_o their_o pleasure_n or_o by_o any_o habitual_a power_n but_o when_o and_o where_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n so_o to_o bring_v forth_o such_o effect_n but_o it_o hold_v forth_o the_o supremacy_n and_o independency_n of_o their_o power_n as_o to_o man_n they_o be_v in_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o no_o way_n subordinate_a to_o that_o beast_n which_o the_o world_n admire_v and_o it_o hold_v forth_o the_o respect_n and_o court_n to_o speak_v so_o which_o they_o have_v with_o god_n he_o will_v refuse_v they_o nothing_o and_o make_v good_a all_o his_o word_n speak_v by_o they_o as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o person_n of_o moses_n elias_n and_o these_o allude_v unto_o for_o which_o cause_n these_o expression_n be_v especial_o use_v justus_n jonas_n use_v such_o a_o expression_n of_o luther_n effectualness_n in_o prayer_n that_o quicquid_fw-la voluit_fw-la pot_n vit_fw-la which_o be_v upon_o the_o matter_n agreeable_a with_o what_o be_v say_v here_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v foolish_o apply_v by_o papist_n to_o enoch_n and_o elias_n as_o if_o they_o be_v to_o come_v in_o person_n and_o pprophecy_n against_o antichrist_n with_o a_o number_n of_o vain_a circumstance_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o say_v of_o this_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n from_o the_o word_n of_o any_o such_o application_n to_o enoch_n and_o elias_n and_o therefore_o more_o easy_o may_v be_v reject_v than_o affirm_v 2._o it_o no_o way_n contribute_v to_o the_o scope_n nor_o be_v consistent_a with_o what_o here_o be_v intend_v which_o be_v to_o show_v the_o low_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a estate_n in_o her_o ordinary_a minister_n nor_o 3._o can_v it_o stand_v with_o what_o be_v say_v of_o these_o two_o their_o glorify_a estate_n and_o that_o both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o of_o enoch_n that_o he_o be_v translate_v never_o to_o taste_v of_o death_n heb._n 11._o it_o be_v strange_a to_o bring_v glorify_v person_n from_o heaven_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o make_v they_o die_v most_o shameful_o who_o yet_o the_o scripture_n exeem_v absolute_o from_o death_n and_o although_o some_o person_n have_v be_v bring_v to_o life_n who_o soul_n be_v glorify_v while_o their_o body_n be_v in_o the_o grave_n yet_o where_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v both_o complete_o glorify_v that_o can_v in_o no_o way_n be_v assert_v more_o than_o to_o be_v immortal_a as_o to_o the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n and_o to_o be_v mortal_a can_v stand_v together_o there_o be_v another_o application_n no_o less_o strange_a whereof_o grotius_n be_v the_o author_n of_o apply_v this_o to_o two_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n their_o testify_v against_o simon_n magus_n this_o be_v also_o destitute_a of_o reason_n there_o be_v no_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n beside_o john_n be_v here_o prophesy_v of_o a_o event_n to_o come_v and_o that_o of_o great_a and_o universal_a concernment_n to_o all_o tongue_n nation_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o of_o simon_n magus_n be_v past_a and_o of_o no_o such_o consequence_n beside_o the_o particular_a exposition_n of_o these_o witness_n kill_v and_o their_o be_v raise_v again_o visible_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o confute_v that_o opinion_n of_o itself_o and_o the_o title_n of_o witness_n can_v no_o way_n be_v astrict_v to_o these_o two_o bishop_n suppon_v such_o to_o have_v be_v for_o there_o be_v still_o many_o more_o testify_v even_o against_o simon_n magus_n and_o rather_o paul_n and_o peter_n shall_v be_v by_o eminency_n account_v witness_n against_o he_o they_o live_v in_o his_o time_n and_o encounter_v with_o he_o yea_o he_o be_v destroy_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o peter_n if_o history_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v in_o this_o and_o yet_o all_o the_o lord_n witness_n the_o minister_n be_v represent_v by_o these_o two_o and_o their_o estate_n describe_v by_o they_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o beast_n follower_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n which_o rejoice_v in_o their_o suffering_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n how_o such_o a_o invention_n can_v be_v entertain_v by_o learned_a man_n which_o to_o the_o most_o gross_a papist_n be_v ridiculous_a if_o it_o be_v move_v who_o these_o be_v that_o the_o lord_n acknowledge_v here_o for_o his_o prophet_n or_o how_o any_o can_v be_v so_o account_v of_o then_o who_o have_v one_o common_a call_n with_o antichrist_n follower_n ans._n 1._o they_o be_v certain_o ordinary_a minister_n continue_v faithful_a witness_n against_o antichrist_n as_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n and_o the_o opposition_n clear_v for_o which_o the_o lord_n call_v they_o my_o witness_n and_o although_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o call_n be_v not_o always_o discernible_a to_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a but_o as_o there_o be_v distinct_a professor_n and_o for_o a_o time_n at_o least_o particular_a church_n so_o may_v there_o also_o be_v a_o distinct_a succession_n of_o minister_n for_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o waldenses_n in_o bohemia_n at_o merindole_n pedmont_n and_o other_o place_n have_v their_o own_o distinct_a minister_n without_o dependence_n on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o sleidan_n and_o thuan_n make_v mention_n of_o two_o of_o they_o who_o be_v send_v to_o luther_n at_o his_o first_o appear_v but_o 2._o although_o that_o be_v not_o clear_a yet_o one_o call_v by_o that_o ordination_n that_o be_v continue_v in_o paperie_n have_v the_o lord_n seal_v put_v to_o it_o by_o a_o inward_a fi●ting_n and_o dispose_n of_o he_o for_o that_o work_n and_o blessing_n he_o in_o it_o may_v be_v account_v the_o lord_n minister_n as_o baptism_n continue_v among_o they_o be_v enough_o for_o initiate_a of_o one_o to_o be_v a_o visible_a christian_a and_o if_o abstract_a from_o their_o corrupt_a practice_n be_v enough_o with_o sound_a faith_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n to_o make_v a_o man_n to_o be_v account_v a_o true_a christian_a so_o be_v their_o ordination_n enough_o for_o the_o external_a part_n of_o a_o call_n and_o a_o man_n have_v it_o and_o be_v furnish_v with_o gift_n and_o inward_a zeal_n to_o exercise_v they_o for_o christ_n and_o not_o in_o a_o dependence_n on_o the_o roman_a antichristian_a hierarchy_n as_o such_o at_o least_o not_o for_o promove_v of_o their_o error_n but_o the_o edification_n of_o soul_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o man_n to_o be_v account_v a_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o antichrist_n even_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o the_o pharisee_n as_o such_o and_o as_o follow_v their_o corrupt_a tradition_n and_o oppose_a christ_n be_v no_o church-officer_n nor_o plant_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n plant_v yet_o if_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v builder_n so_o much_o more_o here_o be_v these_o see_v by_o their_o way_n there_o be_v a_o state_v contest_v between_o they_o and_o antichrist_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o antichrist_n and_o the_o most_o of_o his_o worship_n be_v accident_n that_o intrude_v on_o the_o church_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o christ_n he_o fet_v himself_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o therefore_o his_o corruption_n and_o addition_n be_v remove_v
he_o not_o make_v war_n against_o they_o before_o yes_o his_o rage_n hatred_n and_o persecution_n be_v always_o during_o these_o forty_o and_o two_o month_n but_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o proper_o war_n for_o he_o have_v no_o considerable_a party_n to_o deal_v with_o but_o some_o lurk_a hidden_a one_o he_o have_v all_o at_o will_n tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n at_o his_o pleasure_n vers_fw-la 2._o now_o they_o be_v a_o public_a party_n and_o bide_v he_o some_o more_o contest_v 2._o his_o make_a havoc_n of_o orthodox_n christian_n be_v now_o more_o palpable_a and_o his_o rage_n and_o violence_n at_o a_o great_a height_n have_v more_o fear_n and_o more_o matter_n to_o work_v on_o 3._o this_o rage_n pursue_v till_o death_n yea_o continue_v after_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o bodily_a kill_n but_o it_o may_v take_v in_o excommunication_n banishment_n forfeitoure_n proscription_n and_o all_o these_o way_n use_v to_o undo_v his_o opposite_n in_o sum_n it_o be_v here_o show_v that_o when_o religion_n shall_v get_v up_o its_o head_n and_o minister_n begin_v bold_o and_o open_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n than_o he_o shall_v rage_v and_o leave_v no_o mean_a of_o destruction_n unessay_v and_o shall_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n prevail_v to_o the_o outward_a nar_n of_o its_o liberty_n for_o a_o time_n and_o more_o especial_o vent_v this_o his_o malice_n on_o the_o minister_n of_o it_o and_o take_v away_o the_o life_n of_o many_o which_o clear_o in_o charles_n the_o five_o his_o time_n in_o the_o war_n of_o germany_n war_n and_o massacre_n of_o france_n martyrdom_n and_o persecution_n in_o england_n and_o scotland_n after_o religion_n spring_v up_o first_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o all_o which_o it_o evident_o appear_v 1._o that_o after_o the_o forty_o two_o month_n immediate_o neither_o come_v the_o church_n to_o peace_n nor_o antichrist_n to_o ruin_n he_o fight_v and_o in_o part_n prevail_v then_o 2._o that_o this_o pprophecy_n belong_v and_o relate_v especial_o and_o particular_o to_o that_o time_n when_o reformation_n begin_v and_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n take_v a_o turn_n vers._n 8._o two_o circumstance_n of_o their_o low_a condition_n be_v further_o add_v 1._o that_o after_o death_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v bury_v which_o come_v from_o two_o ground_n 1._o from_o that_o beast_n malice_n that_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o bodily_a death_n of_o christ_n witness_n but_o follow_v they_o with_o contempt_n and_o expose_v they_o to_o opprobrie_v even_o after_o death_n it_o be_v common_a and_o ordinary_a in_o the_o persecution_n of_o france_n england_n germany_n helvetia_n etc._n etc._n to_o keep_v the_o body_n especial_o of_o minister_n unbury_v after_o their_o death_n long_o so_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v kill_v by_o the_o popish_a canton_n be_v thus_o insult_v over_o and_o the_o admiral_n of_o france_n and_o many_o other_o at_o the_o massacre_n of_o paris_n sometime_o their_o bone_n be_v raise_v and_o burn_v after_o their_o burial_n as_o bucer_n be_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n however_o it_o hold_v forth_o cruelty_n even_o after_o death_n seek_v to_o shame_n and_o rub_v reproach_n upon_o their_o very_a name_n and_o work_n when_o they_o think_v they_o have_v their_o will_n 2._o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n overrule_a providence_n that_o will_v not_o have_v all_o memory_n of_o these_o witness_n testimony_n bury_v but_o though_o they_o be_v low_a and_o as_o it_o be_v kill_v and_o unburied_a yet_o he_o make_v their_o enemy_n insult_v over_o they_o in_o their_o low_a condition_n the_o forefeit_n imprison_a banish_v and_o keep_v of_o they_o under_o restraint_n a_o mean_a to_o keep_v their_o testimony_n alive_a so_o that_o though_o the_o witness_n be_v despicable_a to_o they_o and_o they_o think_v now_o that_o they_o be_v down_o and_o shall_v never_o rise_v again_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o testimony_n visible_a and_o they_o be_v witness_n above_o the_o ground_n still_o and_o thing_n be_v not_o desperate_a but_o even_o these_o witness_n in_o their_o death_n imprisonment_n etc._n etc._n witness_n and_o overcome_v the_o second_o circumstance_n in_o this_o verse_n be_v the_o place_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n spiritual_o call_v sodom_n and_o egypt_n by_o this_o city_n be_v certain_o understand_v rome_n yet_o so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o only_o mean_v that_o town_n as_o it_o be_v within_o wall_n but_o that_o empire_n vrbs_fw-la and_o orbis_fw-la be_v at_o that_o time_n when_o this_o be_v write_v almost_o equal_a call_v the_o great_a city_n chap._n 17._o ult_n that_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o this_o city_n spread_v as_o far_o as_o their_o government_n do_v in_o which_o respect_n paul_n call_v himself_o a_o roman_n bear_v as_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o city_n or_o parent_n privilege_v with_o that_o liberty_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a when_o in_o this_o pprophecy_n he_o speak_v of_o rome_n he_o do_v it_o ever_o eminent_o the_o great_a city_n the_o great_a whore_n babylon_n the_o great_a chap._n 17.5_o and_o 18.2_o and_o of_o no_o other_o he_o speak_v so_o save_v of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n in_o opposition_n to_o it_o this_o great_a city_n be_v set_v out_o in_o three_o property_n which_o be_v spiritual_o that_o be_v mystical_o to_o be_v understand_v so_o 1_o corinth_n 11._o they_o all_o eat_v that_o spiritual_a food_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v something_o represent_v by_o these_o name_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n and_o not_o literal_o but_o as_o she_o be_v call_v mystery_n babylon_n etc._n etc._n chap._n 17.5_o because_o there_o be_v a_o mysterious_a resemblance_n so_o here_o she_o be_v call_v spiritual_o sodom_n that_o be_v for_o luxury_n pride_n fullness_n of_o bread_n and_o spiritual_a uncleanness_n abominable_a ezek._n 16._o 2._o egypt_n that_o be_v have_v and_o exercise_v a_o spiritual_a tyranny_n over_o god_n people_n and_o abound_v in_o spiritual_a idol_n as_o egypt_n do_v in_o a_o more_o gross_a way_n for_o which_o israel_n can_v not_o sacrifice_v among_o they_o 3._o it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v there_o not_o literal_o but_o spiritual_o as_o the_o word_n before_o clear_v and_o as_o that_o word_n also_o do_v clear_a that_o be_v either_o not_o only_o be_v he_o crucify_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o also_o there_o or_o it_o be_v spiritual_o egypt_n also_o spiritual_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v there_o which_o can_v agree_v to_o jerusalem_n neither_o to_o egypt_n nor_o sodom_n at_o that_o time_n literal_o take_v neither_o be_v it_o any_o mystery_n or_o spiritual_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o jerusalem_n which_o never_o get_v the_o name_n of_o the_o great_a city_n literal_o and_o it_o be_v rather_o design_v by_o that_o paraphrase_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v than_o by_o jerusalem_n because_o mystical_o the_o true_a church_n be_v still_o in_o this_o book_n set_v out_o by_o that_o this_o part_n of_o the_o description_n agree_v to_o rome_n 1._o in_o that_o under_o its_o dominion_n christ_n be_v crucify_v and_o by_o its_o authority_n to_o wit_n by_o a_o precedent_n of_o they_o pontius_n pilate_n for_o he_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o gentile_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o his_o member_n ordinance_n etc._n etc._n there_o he_o have_v be_v long_o persecute_v and_o crucify_v in_o they_o and_o put_v to_o open_a shame_n heb._n 6.6_o in_o the_o street_n of_o this_o city_n that_o be_v public_o by_o their_o authority_n as_o malefactor_n use_v to_o be_v in_o the_o street_n this_o be_v not_o private_a murder_n but_o open_a avow_a persecution_n see_v for_o this_o petrarcha_n lib._n epist._n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la epist._n 16._o who_o write_v three_o hundred_o year_n since_o this_o be_v amplify_v in_o the_o 9_o and_o 10._o vers_fw-la in_o the_o 9_o vers_fw-la 1._o in_o the_o delight_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v take_v in_o the_o low_a condition_n of_o these_o witness_n they_o shall_v see_v they_o that_o be_v they_o shall_v with_o delight_n behold_v it_o and_o hear_v it_o and_o will_v not_o be_v content_a to_o have_v they_o bury_v and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o all_o kind_n their_o hatred_n be_v universal_a 2._o the_o time_n be_v not_o long_o and_o this_o sad_a condition_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o mirth_n of_o this_o world_n will_v change_v it_o be_v but_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a with_o a_o allusion_n to_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o to_o keep_v a_o proportionablnesse_n to_o the_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a before_o a_o indefinite_a time_n certain_o and_o can_v be_v three_o day_n for_o than_o all_o kindred_n shall_v not_o have_v time_n to_o see_v they_o and_o so_o make_v merry_a 2._o it_o be_v not_o literal_o to_o be_v take_v for_o they_o be_v
time_n of_o forty_o two_o month_n we_o will_v not_o conceive_v 1._o that_o he_o be_v at_o a_o height_n in_o the_o first_o month_n or_o always_o alike_o no_o but_o as_o the_o church_n decline_v grow_v so_o grow_v his_o rise_n nor_o 2._o that_o at_o the_o end_n of_o forty_o two_o month_n his_o power_n shall_v be_v utter_o break_v no_o for_o when_o he_o kill_v the_o witness_n than_o the_o vial_n be_v to_o be_v pour_v out_o that_o piece_n and_o piece_n slow_o bring_v on_o his_o destruction_n but_o this_o be_v mean_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v on_o the_o increase_a hand_n till_o these_o month_n be_v past_a what_o opposition_n come_v to_o he_o he_o will_v crush_v it_o but_o after_o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v so_o his_o power_n will_v be_v clipe_v his_o tyranny_n discover_v and_o his_o authority_n so_o shake_v and_o question_v that_o it_o will_v never_o be_v so_o universal_o after_o that_o accept_a or_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o for_o as_o that_o term_n bring_v not_o the_o full_a outgate_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o height_n but_o a_o beginning_n of_o it_o even_o so_o here_o out_o of_o all_o this_o we_o may_v confirm_v what_o we_o say_v of_o this_o beast_n and_o that_o wound_n and_o its_o heal_n which_o must_v be_v before_o these_o forty_o and_o two_o month_n during_o which_o time_n he_o continue_v whole_a and_o persecute_v the_o saint_n even_o at_o the_o very_a close_a or_o last_o part_n thereof_o his_o blasphemy_n be_v more_o full_o set_v down_o vers_n 6._o in_o reference_n to_o three_o object_n who_o he_o take_v a_o liberty_n to_o blaspheme_v which_o be_v in_o reference_n to_o god_n derogate_v some_o way_n from_o his_o excellent_a holiness_n and_o pure_a sovereign_a nature_n when_o apply_v to_o man_n or_o creature_n to_o blaspheme_v be_v to_o speak_v ill_o of_o to_o detract_v from_o and_o to_o wrong_v they_o by_o our_o word_n so_o to_o blaspheme_v god_n and_o the_o king_n 1_o king_n 21.10_o and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n often_o col._n 3.8_o tit._n 3.2_o or_o to_o make_v they_o subservient_fw-fr to_o our_o blasphemy_n this_o blaphemy_n be_v three_o way_n vent_v 1._o against_o god_n this_o he_o do_v by_o assume_v to_o himself_o and_o give_v to_o idol_n angel_n and_o saint_n what_o be_v due_a to_o god_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ._n what_o prerogative_n be_v more_o than_o to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o religious_a worship_n and_o this_o he_o take_v to_o himself_o and_o give_v to_o other_o at_o his_o pleasure_n make_v they_o the_o object_n of_o adoration_n invocation_n and_o so_o of_o faith_n his_o dispensation_n indulgence_n etc._n etc._n 2._o it_o be_v against_o god_n tabernacle_n that_o be_v either_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n call_v the_o true_a tabernacle_n heb._n 9_o wherein_o god_n dwell_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n joh._n 1._o and_o col._n 2.9_o or_o his_o church_n and_o saint_n on_o earth_n which_o be_v call_v the_o temple_n chap._n 11._o opposite_a to_o the_o outward_a court_n and_o be_v god_n tabernacle_n with_o man_n because_o in_o they_o he_o dwell_v and_o as_o it_o be_v sojourn_v till_o he_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o settle_a enjoy_v of_o himself_o in_o his_o temple_n in_o heaven_n which_o sometime_o in_o scripture_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o tabernacle_n as_o the_o triumphant_a church_n be_v to_o the_o militant_a both_o these_o the_o pope_n blaspheme_v the_o first_o by_o mass_n hoaft_n adoration_n transubstantiation_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o whereby_o our_o lord_n humane_a nature_n be_v quite_o alter_v and_o blaspheme_v as_o if_o it_o be_v there_o or_o have_v a_o create_v be_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o a_o wretched_a man_n the_o second_o the_o true_a church_n and_o saint_n be_v here_o blaspheme_v to_o wit_n by_o curse_n reproach_n excommunication_n and_o devote_v of_o they_o to_o destruction_n and_o propose_v they_o as_o the_o vile_a man_n and_o as_o the_o great_a heretic_n in_o the_o world_n instance_n many_o be_v palpable_a 3._o he_o blaspheme_v these_o that_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v saint_n depart_v and_o angel_n father_v many_o mischievous_a thing_n on_o they_o abuse_v their_o name_n to_o idol-worship_n and_o charm_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n more_o wrong_v and_o abuse_v by_o they_o than_o peter_n and_o mary_n the_o bless_a virgin_n when_o many_o vile_a thing_n be_v father_v on_o they_o and_o seek_v from_o they_o as_o if_o they_o approve_v these_o thing_n idol_n and_o idolatrous_a temple_n style_v by_o they_o and_o erect_v to_o they_o and_o what_o great_a wrong_n than_o this_o can_v be_v do_v to_o these_o saint_n while_o as_o the_o angel_n rev._n 19_o reprove_v john_n for_o it_o these_o three_o to_o wit_n god_n his_o church-militant_a and_o triumphant_a the_o most_o excellent_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n he_o wrong_v they_o all_o and_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n and_o to_o who_o agree_v this_o so_o well_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o this_o he_o do_v not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o by_o decree_n ordain_v it_o as_o by_o law_n in_o short_a a●_n antiochus_n blaspheme_v all_o who_o in_o his_o practice_n he_o despise_v and_o abuse_v all_o so_o shall_v he_o do_v and_o so_o have_v he_o long_o do_v as_o if_o he_o profess_o do_v blaspheme_v they_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o power_n be_v in_o persecution_n vers_fw-la 7._o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o even_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v give_v to_o make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o overcome_v they_o here_o be_v his_o fight_n with_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o woman_n seed_n chap._n 12.17_o he_o raise_v the_o world_n against_o they_o and_o over_o their_o body_n they_o prevail_v this_o war_n with_o the_o saint_n take_v in_o all_o violent_a martyrdom_n of_o singular_a person_n put_v to_o death_n for_o oppose_v this_o beast_n usurpation_n as_o be_v special_o in_o the_o end_n of_o those_o month_n very_o many_o in_o italy_n germany_n england_n etc._n etc._n it_o take_v in_o also_o the_o purpose_a war_n that_o for_o many_o year_n to_o the_o effusion_n of_o much_o blood_n be_v undertake_v against_o the_o waldenses_n and_o other_o that_o look_v on_o the_o pope_n as_o antichrist_n ten_o hundred_o thousand_o man_n be_v slay_v as_o be_v report_v by_o per●nius_n apud_fw-la med._n in_o france_n and_o this_o do_v by_o way_n of_o state_v war_n not_o by_o pillaging_n but_o by_o make_v use_n of_o strong_a army_n once_o intend_v against_o the_o sarracen_n which_o by_o the_o pope_n be_v divert_v and_o employ_v against_o the_o waldenses_n the_o history_n also_o of_o the_o bohemian_a war_n after_o john_n husse_n and_o jerome_n of_o prague_n be_v burn_v against_o these_o who_o be_v call_v hussit_n which_o continue_v in_o great_a eagerness_n for_o many_o year_n the_o history_n of_o the_o poor_a people_n of_o piedmont_n calabria_n and_o angrongue_n and_o other_o place_n in_o italy_n persecute_v by_o a_o army_n under_o the_o lord_n of_o trinity_n the_o destruction_n of_o merindoll_n and_o many_o poor_a people_n about_o in_o provence_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o aix_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o opede_a precedent_n beside_o the_o many_o barbarous_a cruelty_n in_o holland_n germany_n france_n etc._n etc._n be_v evidence_n of_o this_o war_n of_o the_o beast_n against_o the_o saint_n touch_v before_o chap._n 11.7_o which_o blood_n though_o immediate_o shed_v by_o civil_a man_n yet_o principal_o flow_v from_o and_o be_v to_o be_v charge_v on_o the_o whore_n in_o whole_a skirt_n be_v find_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o saint_n chap._n 17.6_o and_o 18.24_o the_o success_n be_v set_v down_o he_o overcome_v they_o to_o wit_n by_o spoil_v they_o of_o their_o liberty_n life_n and_o temporal_a estate_n for_o a_o time_n but_o they_o overcome_v he_o by_o adhere_v to_o truth_n and_o refuse_v his_o corruption_n even_o at_o their_o low_a estate_n of_o suffering_n as_o it_o be_v chap._n 1●_n vers_fw-la 11._o after_o these_o character_n of_o his_o dominion_n his_o success_n or_o the_o amplitude_n of_o his_o dominion_n be_v more_o particular_o set_v out_o and_o repeat_v in_o three_o thing_n 1._o in_o its_o extent_n he_o have_v power_n over_o all_o kindred_n tongue_n and_o nation_n that_o be_v there_o be_v none_o exempt_v from_o he_o no_o nation_n tongue_n etc._n etc._n who_o be_v christian_n that_o be_v preserve_v from_o his_o corruption_n and_o many_o whole_a nation_n carry_v away_o with_o it_o though_o not_o all_o of_o every_o nation_n and_o kindred_n be_v infect_v in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v very_o broad_a vers_fw-la 7._o 2._o it_o be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o degree_n of_o their_o submission_n all_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v worship_v he_o that_o be_v be_v every_o way_n at_o his_o devotion_n and_o shall_v
their_o contempt_n of_o and_o enmity_n at_o the_o light_n which_o he_o have_v make_v to_o shine_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o late_a schoolman_n especial_o the_o jesuit_n be_v more_o corrupt_a than_o the_o former_a as_o may_v be_v mark_v in_o the_o write_n of_o diverse_a schoolman_n upon_o thomas_n who_o do_v mutilate_v and_o corrupt_v many_o thing_n in_o he_o so_o as_o they_o may_v agree_v with_o the_o late_a determination_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o may_v be_v most_o opposite_a to_o those_o they_o call_v heretic_n a_o instance_n whereof_o may_v be_v see_v in_o cajetan_a in_o 3._o thoma_n qu._n 48._o art_n 5._o where_o explain_v that_o assertion_n of_o thomas_n that_o only_a christ_n ought_v to_o be_v call_v our_o redeemer_n which_o former_o we_o have_v bellarmin_n contradict_v he_o lay_v down_o for_o the_o qualify_a thereof_o that_o bull_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o concern_v indulgence_n and_o the_o application_n of_o the_o saint_n purchase_v to_o other_o which_o be_v send_v to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v his_o legate_n in_o germany_n and_o force_v such_o a_o sense_n upon_o thomas_n as_o may_v agree_v with_o it_o thus_o also_o as_o we_o may_v see_v be_v do_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n where_o ever_o in_o all_o debate_n among_o divine_n the_o most_o corrupt_a side_n be_v incline_v to_o and_o conclude_v 4._o remain_v in_o popery_n now_o have_v more_o contempt_n with_o it_o of_o god_n calling_n and_o have_v great_a snare_n as_o be_v say_v and_o therefore_o have_v less_o ground_n now_o either_o to_o expect_v preservation_n from_o sin_n or_o wrath_n because_o god_n call_v require_v separation_n now_o more_o full_o and_o in_o a_o more_o distinct_a manner_n than_o former_o he_o do_v as_o revel_v 18._o come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n lest_o you_o partake_v of_o her_o plague_n which_o do_v hold_v forth_o a_o special_a hazard_n in_o reference_n both_o to_o sin_n and_o wrath_n after_o the_o lord_n make_v this_o to_o be_v proclaim_v more_o than_o former_o it_o be_v lecture_n four_o vers._n 12._o here_o be_v the_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n here_o be_v they_o that_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n 13._o and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o i_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o yea_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o 14._o and_o i_o look_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a cloud_n and_o upon_o the_o cloud_n one_o at_z like_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v on_o his_o head_n a_o golden_a crown_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n a_o sharp_a sickle_n 15._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o thy_o sickle_n and_o reap_v for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v for_o thou_o to_o reap_v for_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v ripe_a 16._o and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o his_o sickle_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v reap_v 17._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o also_o have_v a_o sharp_a sickle_n 18._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o from_o the_o altar_n which_o have_v power_n over_o fire_n and_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a cry_n to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a sickle_n say_v thrust_v in_o thy_o sharp_a sickle_n and_o gather_v the_o cluster_n of_o the_o vine_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o her_o grape_n be_v full_o ripe_a 19_o and_o the_o angel_n thrust_v in_o his_o sickle_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o gather_v the_o vine_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o great_a winepress_a of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n 20._o and_o the_o winepress_a be_v tread_v without_o the_o city_n and_o blood_n come_v out_o of_o the_o winepress_a even_o unto_o the_o horse_n bridle_v by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o six_o hundred_o furlong_n have_v show_v the_o foretold_a threaten_a and_o begin_v ruin_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o chapter_n before_o the_o spirit_n describe_v the_o perfect_a of_o that_o judgement_n he_o casteth-in_a two_o word_n needful_a for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o god_n people_n the_o first_o be_v vers_n 12._o and_o respect_v the_o former_a word_n wherein_o babylon_n ruin_n be_v foretell_v yet_o for_o the_o time_n antichrist_n rage_v and_o the_o saint_n suffer_v this_o verse_n comfort_v and_o encourage_v they_o against_o that_o tentation_n two_o way_n 1._o by_o grant_v that_o indeed_o this_o will_v be_v a_o occasion_n to_o exercise_n and_o try_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n people_n and_o make_v it_o know_v which_o a_o hard_a time_n do_v best_a whether_o they_o will_v keep_v the_o command_n of_o god_n in_o their_o practice_n make_v conscience_n of_o these_o and_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v it_o will_v discover_v true_a faith_n from_o counterfeit_n and_o who_o be_v true_a professor_n of_o that_o faith_n that_o be_v true_a yet_o withal_o god_n people_n shall_v have_v no_o loss_n by_o it_o it_o will_v be_v but_o temporary_a and_o here_o be_v their_o trial_n that_o be_v god_n end_n to_o exercise_v grace_n and_o duty_n be_v best_a try_v and_o know_v in_o all_o ill_a time_n a_o suffer_a time_n evidence_v honesty_n more_o than_o prosperity_n and_o suffer_v be_v god_n people_n ordinary_a lot_n whether_o antichrist_n be_v fall_v or_o rise_v the_o second_o word_n cast_v in_o for_o comfort_v god_n people_n be_v from_o the_o blessedness_n of_o the_o dead_a it_o may_v be_v especial_o of_o these_o that_o suffer_v under_o antichrist_n that_o die_v well_o in_o that_o difficult_a time_n the_o first_o consolation_n be_v from_o the_o outgate_n god_n shall_v give_v when_o these_o trial_n shall_v be_v over_o and_o antichrist_n ruin_v the_o second_o from_o what_o may_v comfort_v they_o in_o hard_a suffering_n for_o the_o time_n it_o be_v casten_z in_o here_o before_o the_o sad_a thing_n come_v be_v set_v down_o for_o two_o reason_n 1._o to_o be_v a_o warning_n of_o the_o high_a degree_n that_o these_o trouble_n will_v come_v unto_o so_o that_o these_o that_o be_v live_v shall_v count_v the_o dead_a happy_a that_o die_v well_o who_o be_v free_v from_o these_o day_n see_v solomon_n eccles._n 4.2_o praise_v the_o dead_a more_o than_o the_o live_n the_o second_o thing_n in_o the_o scope_n be_v to_o encourage_v and_o comfort_v the_o godly_a that_o take_v the_o right_a way_n of_o live_v so_o as_o to_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n these_o trouble_n shall_v not_o mar_v their_o blessedness_n but_o though_o the_o earth_n shall_v triumph_v over_o they_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a as_o chap._n 11._o yet_o even_o then_o they_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v bless_v and_o therefore_o need_v not_o fear_n or_o faint_v under_o these_o trial_n which_o be_v come_v there_o be_v four_o particular_n in_o these_o word_n 1._o a_o preface_n imply_v a_o weightinesse_n in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v 2._o a_o plain_a maxim_n bless_a etc._n etc._n 3._o a_o qualification_n not_o restrict_v that_o blessedness_n to_o such_o a_o time_n but_o show_v that_o it_o be_v special_o agreeable_a and_o applicable_a to_o it_o from_o henceforth_o 4._o the_o reason_n of_o this_o application_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v the_o preface_n come_v in_o by_o way_n of_o diversion_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o singular_a thing_n thereby_o to_o make_v what_o be_v say_v the_o more_o remarkable_a 1._o it_o be_v not_o jobn_n invent_v he_o hear_v a_o voice_n 2._o it_o be_v no_o earthly_a voice_n but_o a_o sentence_n from_o heaven_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v respect_v 3._o what_o be_v say_v be_v to_o be_v record_v as_o useful_a to_o god_n people_n write_v say_v he_o to_o jobn_n which_o except_o it_o be_v some_o special_a doctrine_n be_v not_o usual_o repeat_v the_o plain_a doctrine_n or_o maxim_n that_o shall_v be_v write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v bless_a be_v they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n by_o which_o word_n three_o thing_n be_v hold_v forth_o 1._o a_o end_n common_a to_o all_o which_o be_v death_n 2._o a_o difference_n in_o die_v and_o that_o be_v to_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o some_o and_o opposite_a to_o die_v in_o our_o sin_n job._n 3.24_o as_o christ_n say_v that_o be_v in_o effect_n under_o the_o curse_n and_o unreconciled_a to_o god_n through_o christ_n so_o die_v in_o he_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n philip._n 3.9_o 3._o a_o great_a odds_o and_o difference_n of_o the_o consequent_n of_o these_o diverse_a death_n the_o one_o be_v bless_v that_o
four_o demonstration_n be_v refute_v by_o this_o also_o antichrist_n say_v he_o shall_v raise_v great_a persecution_n but_o that_o great_a persecution_n have_v not_o come_v as_o yet_o for_o these_o that_o suffer_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o few_o and_o by_o one_o punishment_n to_o wit_n fire_n answ._n if_o this_o of_o the_o king_n make_v of_o war_n against_o the_o saint_n be_v fulfil_v then_o that_o persecution_n be_v fulfil_v but_o that_o be_v clear_v to_o be_v fulfil_v chap._n 13._o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o horn_n for_o the_o greatness_n of_o a_o persecution_n we_o may_v consider_v it_o in_o these_o four_o 1._o in_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o when_o not_o only_o the_o full_a omit_v of_o truth_n but_o the_o least_o opposition_n to_o error_n or_o abstain_v from_o their_o idolatry_n or_o countenance_v or_o perform_v any_o allow_a duty_n be_v a_o ground_n of_o persecution_n that_o be_v a_o great_a persecution_n but_o never_o be_v there_o less_o cause_n lay_v hold_v on_o than_o have_v be_v by_o the_o papist_n and_o popish_a king_n as_o the_o have_v of_o a_o new_a testament_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n question_v any_o of_o their_o ceremony_n eat_v flesh_n in_o lent_n yea_o not_o answer_v clear_o to_o their_o question_n witness_v the_o rule_n of_o inquisition_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o his_o edict_n and_o frances_n the_o first_o his_o with_o all_o their_o proceed_n in_o germany_n england_n france_n etc._n etc._n 2._o we_o may_v consider_v a_o great_a persecution_n in_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o that_o be_v the_o number_n and_o kind_n of_o these_o persecute_v have_v there_o be_v more_o than_o in_o the_o war_n of_o bohemia_n against_o the_o waldenses_n in_o holland_n england_n france_n etc._n etc._n against_o old_a and_o young_a woman_n and_o suck_a child_n sick_a minister_n judge_n &_o c_o bellar._n himself_o de_fw-fr notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 18._o reckon_v 100000._o waldenses_n slay_v at_o one_o time_n and_o many_o battle_n wherein_o always_o say_v he_o papist_n prevail_v 3._o if_o we_o consider_v persecution_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o cruel_a act_n of_o it_o can_v there_o be_v more_o and_o great_a than_o the_o bloody_a massacre_n in_o france_n the_o fifty_o thousand_o that_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o holland_n city_n burn_v etc._n etc._n read_v that_o sentence_n of_o the_o parliament_n at_o aix_n in_o france_n execute_v by_o the_o lord_n open_v against_o merindoll_n and_o other_o in_o province_n as_o sleidan_n have_v it_o lib._n 13._o &_o 16._o what_o have_v the_o inquisition_n do_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o cut_v off_o his_o own_o son_n and_o philip_z the_o second_o the_o confessor_n of_o his_o father_n charles_n the_o five_o and_o burn_v he_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a as_o be_v usual_a to_o they_o break_v faith_n from_o thirst_v after_o their_o blood_n as_o at_o constance_n in_o the_o case_n of_o jerome_n of_o prague_n and_o john_n husse_v when_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v they_o a_o safe_a conduct_n what_o horrible_a cruelty_n and_o villainy_n have_v be_v use_v cast_v their_o dead_a body_n on_o the_o ground_n abuse_v woman_n spoil_v banish_v starve_a and_o torment_v be_v know_v to_o these_o who_o have_v read_v that_o history_n of_o the_o persecution_n 4._o it_o be_v great_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o heat_n and_o malice_n it_o come_v from_o and_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v by_o that_o if_o they_o put_v few_o to_o death_n it_o be_v either_o because_o they_o know_v they_o not_o or_o be_v by_o god_n and_o external_a cause_n restrain_v but_o their_o attempt_n and_o law_n as_o that_o of_o alphonse_n his_o make_n of_o it_o treason_n to_o deny_v the_o pope_n or_o converse_n with_o ●_o lollard_n bull_n incitement_n and_o promise_n to_o engage_v other_o to_o destroy_v protestant_n do_v hold_v out_o their_o humour_n now_o lay_v all_o these_o together_o we_o will_v find_v no_o persecution_n have_v be_v long_o sore_a or_o more_o cruel_a than_o this_o this_o demonstration_n therefore_o be_v full_a and_o prove_v he_o come_v as_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o may_v be_v retort_v if_o this_o persecution_n be_v fulfil_v than_o he_o be_v come_v more_o may_v be_v see_v on_o chap._n 13._o the_o five_o and_o six_o demonstration_n be_v also_o find_v faulty_a by_o this_o the_o five_o assert_v that_o antichrist_n be_v but_o to_o continue_v such_o a_o short_a time_n three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o the_o six_o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o come_v forty_o five_o day_n after_o his_o ruin_n both_o which_o be_v false_a not_o only_o from_o what_o be_v say_v but_o from_o this_o that_o this_o pprophecy_n hold_v forth_o sundry_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v after_o his_o ruin_n which_o in_o such_o a_o time_n can_v be_v do_v yea_o all_o these_o thousand_o year_n chap._n 20._o be_v after_o his_o begin_a height_n see_v chap._n 20._o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o therefore_o his_o time_n be_v not_o to_o be_v of_o so_o short_a continuance_n and_o if_o that_o reckon_n be_v true_a then_o at_o that_o time_n any_o that_o can_v count_v antichrist_n rise_v or_o end_n which_o to_o they_o be_v palpable_a may_v know_v the_o precise_a end_n of_o the_o world_n before_o it_o come_v which_o be_v false_a and_o whereas_o he_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 8._o de_fw-fr pontif._n make_v the_o continuance_n of_o antichrist_n long_a than_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n to_o reconcile_v that_o of_o dan._n 12._o of_o 1290._o day_n which_o ignorant_o he_o apply_v to_o antichrist_n it_o be_v manifest_o false_a for_o the_o term_n of_o forty_o two_o month_n be_v chap._n 13._o set_v to_o the_o beast_n as_o 1260._o day_n be_v to_o the_o prophet_n the_o one_o be_v bound_v with_o the_o other_o therefore_o that_o place_n belong_v not_o to_o this_o beside_o if_o he_o continue_v a_o month_n long_o as_o that_o count_n make_v he_o than_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v just_a three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o so_o themselves_o add_v a_o month_n more_o and_o break_v the_o time_n which_o they_o call_v definite_a thus_o these_o demonstration_n right_o follow_v will_v not_o only_o make_v out_o that_o the_o antichrist_n be_v come_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o a_o three_o sort_n of_o use_n be_v practical_a and_o 1._o see_v here_o the_o change_n of_o kingdom_n and_o the_o shortness_n of_o they_o and_o god_n sovereignty_n in_o time_v they_o and_o stint_v they_o even_o those_o who_o be_v most_o opposite_a to_o he_o 2._o our_o lord_n the_o lamb_n ver_fw-la 14._o be_v a_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a person_n it_o become_v we_o to_o have_v high_a thought_n of_o he_o to_o tremble_v before_o he_o and_o to_o be_v comfort_v in_o he_o 3._o it_o be_v comfortable_a that_o this_o person_n ow_v his_o people_n so_o that_o they_o have_v common_a cause_n friend_n and_o adversary_n he_o and_o the_o choose_a be_v on_o one_o side_n 4._o our_o lord_n jesus_n get_v always_o the_o victory_n the_o side_n he_o be_v on_o lose_v never_o in_o the_o end_n and_o as_o to_o his_o end_n what_o ever_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v before_o man_n it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v on_o the_o lamb_n side_n the_o victory_n there_o only_o be_v sure_a 5._o the_o weight_n of_o the_o victory_n lie_v on_o christ_n concurrence_n because_o he_o be_v on_o that_o side_n he_o be_v the_o great_a captain_n by_o who_o conduct_n the_o victory_n be_v allanerly_a attain_v his_o soldier_n need_v not_o fight_v but_o stand_v and_o behold_v his_o salvation_n be_v chap._n 19_o they_o follow_v in_o white_a not_o fight_v but_o triumph_v it_o be_v the_o lamb_n that_o overcome_v all_o enemy_n and_o therefore_o only_o be_v arm_v lecture_n vi._n vers._n 15._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o the_o water_n which_o thou_o see_v where_o the_o whore_n sit_v be_v people_n and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n 16._o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v upon_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n and_o shall_v make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o shall_v eat_v her_o flesh_n and_o burn_v she_o with_o fire_n 17._o for_o god_n have_v put_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o fulfil_v his_o will_n and_o to_o agree_v and_o give_v their_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o beast_n until_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v 18._o and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v that_o great_a city_n which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o angel_n have_v describe_v the_o beast_n proceed_v to_o interpret_v the_o woman_n which_o be_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o vision_n vers_fw-la 3._o and_o of_o the_o angel_n undertake_n vers_fw-la 7._o this_o woman_n be_v describe_v by_o three_o thing_n 1._o by_o her_o greatness_n vers_fw-la 15._o 2._o by_o her_o ruin_n vers_fw-la 16_o 17._o 3._o by_o a_o more_o particular_a character_n from_o her_o present_a state_n
gog_n and_o magog_n who_o come_v not_o to_o besiege_v heaven_n 2._o it_o be_v a_o reign_n or_o good_a condition_n that_o satan_n bind_n have_v influence_n to_o increase_v and_o his_o lose_n to_o diminish_v and_o disturb_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o saint_n or_o martyr_n who_o be_v dead_a for_o the_o devil_n bind_v have_v no_o influence_n on_o that_o 3._o it_o be_v such_o a_o good_a condition_n as_o be_v capable_a of_o hazard_n and_o interruption_n by_o enemy_n therefore_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n it_o hold_v forth_o then_o a_o good_a condition_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n and_o that_o in_o a_o particular_a limit_a time_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o it_o at_o other_o time_n it_o can_v therefore_o be_v understand_v of_o suffer_a martyr_n they_o be_v glorify_v in_o heaven_n after_o their_o suffering_n in_o that_o time_n for_o this_o be_v no_o peculiar_a thing_n to_o any_o one_o time_n but_o always_o and_o in_o all_o time_n a_o truth_n three_o as_o it_o hold_v forth_o a_o good_a condition_n so_o it_o will_v seem_v eminent_o to_o hold_v out_o the_o best_a that_o they_o can_v expect_v on_o earth_n for_o degree_n length_n of_o time_n and_o kind_a of_o dispensation_n this_o be_v clear_a 1._o by_o the_o expression_n of_o sit_v upon_o throne_n and_o reign_v especial_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o go_v before_o of_o the_o woman_n flee_v and_o the_o prophet_n prophesy_v in_o sackcloth_n this_o say_v it_o be_v a_o honourable_a condition_n and_o settle_a opposite_a to_o that_o 2._o by_o this_o that_o they_o be_v style_v martyr_n or_o such_o as_o be_v spotless_a in_o keep_v their_o garment_n clean_o which_o signify_v much_o holiness_n and_o their_o live_n with_o christ_n also_o denote_v the_o same_o 3._o that_o they_o have_v a_o camp_n and_o look_v as_o if_o all_o former_o dead_a be_v alive_a again_o it_o signify_v number_n they_o be_v numerous_a all_o of_o they_o be_v put_v together_o and_o as_o it_o be_v both_o these_o kill_v under_o emperor_n and_o the_o beast_n antichrist_n they_o arise_v now_o in_o this_o new_a state_n of_o the_o church_n see_v chap._n 7._o ver_fw-la 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n 4._o that_o satan_n be_v bind_v so_o strict_o and_o that_o they_o reign_v and_o live_v peaceable_o it_o show_v purity_n and_o peace_n in_o a_o great_a degree_n 5._o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n it_o show_v it_o be_v the_o long_a time_n that_o have_v be_v before_o the_o church_n be_v see_v overrun_v with_o persecution_n after_o with_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n and_o their_o favourer_n after_o that_o immediate_o with_o antichrist_n now_o this_o flourish_a reign_n shall_v be_v long_o the_o last_o then_o be_v the_o long_a most_o uninterrupted_n and_o complete_a dominion_n this_o must_v be_v it_o all_o thing_n consider_v four_o it_o be_v some_o good_a condition_n peculiar_a to_o some_o one_o time_n not_o such_o a_o reign_n as_o believer_n always_o have_v even_o when_o satan_n be_v loose_a and_o gog_n and_o magog_n come_v but_o something_o eminent_a that_o be_v not_o common_a to_o other_o interval_n of_o the_o church_n condition_n but_o be_v more_o than_o have_v former_o be_v or_o will_v after_o it_o be_v for_o as_o it_o be_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o devil_n eminent_a restraint_n so_o on_o the_o other_o it_o be_v the_o saint_n eminent_a reign_n so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o in_o such_o case_n before_o these_o year_n begin_v nor_o yet_o be_v to_o be_v after_o they_o be_v expire_v a_o five_o thing_n we_o say_v concern_v this_o reign_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v that_o what_o ever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o absolute_a either_o for_o holiness_n purity_n peace_n or_o length_n of_o time_n which_o appear_v 1._o because_o so_o they_o reign_v as_o satan_n be_v restrain_v and_o his_o restraint_n be_v but_o partial_a so_o also_o must_v their_o reign_n be_v see_v their_o absolute_a reign_n be_v reserve_v for_o heaven_n after_o the_o last_o judgement_n as_o his_o damnation_n be_v it_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n where_o that_o which_o be_v only_o perfect_a be_v and_o what_o be_v imperfect_a be_v not_o do_v away_o to_o believer_n 1_o cor._n 13._o till_o they_o come_v there_o either_o in_o holiness_n or_o outward_a or_o inward_a peace_n 2._o it_o appear_v from_o this_o that_o while_o believer_n here_o reign_v in_o the_o world_n in_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n their_o own_o corruption_n many_o hypocrite_n that_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o visible_a militant_a church_n till_o the_o last_o day_n separate_v all_o these_o who_o offend_v and_o there_o be_v yet_o many_o dead_a in_o the_o world_n who_o have_v not_o get_v victory_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o there_o be_v also_o enemy_n without_o as_o gog_n and_o magog_n that_o want_v not_o enmity_n but_o opportunity_n it_o be_v therefore_o clear_v not_o to_o be_v a_o absolute_a freedom_n that_o they_o enjoy_v though_o it_o be_v in_o some_o extraordinary_a measure_n and_o manner_n yet_o onset_n upon_o and_o wrestle_n with_o they_o be_v not_o want_v and_o that_o with_o some_o success_n though_o god_n gracious_o disappoint_v as_o to_o the_o event_n and_o suffer_v it_o not_o to_o get_v to_o a_o height_n yet_o all_o his_o child_n have_v their_o own_o cross_n and_o be_v to_o look_v for_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o although_o this_o be_v reject_v by_o alstedius_n in_o his_o diatriba_fw-la as_o axioma_fw-la vulgatum_fw-la but_o not_o probatum_fw-la and_o say_v these_o warning_n belong_v to_o the_o primitive_a time_n yet_o who_o shall_v consider_v that_o the_o scripture_n join_v follow_v of_o christ_n deny_v of_o ourselves_o and_o take_v up_o of_o the_o cross_n together_o as_o mat._n 16.24_o and_o elsewhere_o and_o make_v it_o a_o mark_n of_o son_n and_o of_o love_n to_o be_v chastise_v heb._n 12._o and_o a_o piece_n of_o our_o conformity_n to_o christ_n the_o head_n rom._n 8.28_o and_o a_o consequent_a unto_o godliness_n always_o 2_o tim._n 3.12_o and_o many_o other_o place_n will_v find_v it_o not_o so_o easy_a to_o reject_v it_o except_o we_o will_v wave_v perpetual_a duty_n such_o as_o deny_v of_o ourselves_o etc._n etc._n and_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v such_o need_n or_o use_v of_o cross_n to_o believer_n who_o will_v certain_o have_v corruption_n in_o they_o to_o be_v mortify_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o need_v the_o rod_n for_o promove_v of_o that_o a_o six_o thing_n i_o suppose_v be_v clear_a that_o what_o ever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o literal_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o proper_o as_o the_o word_n sound_v but_o figurative_o and_o spiritual_o the_o particular_a make_v out_o of_o this_o will_v follow_v in_o the_o open_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o this_o we_o may_v in_o general_n say_v 1._o that_o they_o be_v figurative_o to_o be_v understand_v not_o as_o the_o letter_n proper_o sound_v for_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v with_o a_o chain_n can_v be_v proper_a but_o to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v keeped-in_a like_o a_o violent_a mastiff_n in_o a_o chain_n by_o god_n sovereignty_n so_o throne_n the_o soul_n of_o these_o slay_v their_o live_n and_o their_o resurrection_n be_v figurative_a as_o the_o rest_n who_o continue_v dead_a signify_v not_o proper_o these_o who_o continue_v in_o the_o grave_n but_o these_o in_o nature_n for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o all_o man_n contradistinct_o from_o these_o live_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n yet_o the_o last_o judgement_n be_v not_o come_v therefore_o many_o live_v a_o natural_a life_n then_o who_o do_v not_o live_v thus_o but_o as_o all_o man_n be_v divide_v in_o regenerate_a and_o unregenerate_a so_o here_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o live_v and_o dead_a to_o that_o same_o purpose_n so_o soul_n sit_v on_o throne_n and_o reign_v with_o christ_n can_v but_o be_v figurative_a as_o that_o also_o of_o the_o resurrection_n there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o one_o acknowledge_v that_o be_v proper_a which_o this_o be_v not_o 2._o i_o say_v they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v spiritual_o which_o confirm_v the_o former_a that_o be_v this_o dominion_n reign_n live_v and_o resurrection_n of_o the_o saint_n must_v be_v spiritual_o understand_v especial_o and_o chief_o for_o clear_v whereof_o understand_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a and_o proper_a life_n dominion_n and_o resurrection_n so_o there_o be_v one_o figurative_a and_o spiritual_a which_o agree_v to_o all_o christian_n 1._o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a slavery_n and_o bondage_n to_o sin_n death_n satan_n etc._n etc._n rom._n 6._o we_o be_v servant_n to_o it_o led_z captive_z by_o the_o devil_n at_o his_o will_n sell_v under_o sin_n and_o its_o reign_n rom._n 7._o so_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a dominion_n to_o be_v free_a from_o that_o make_v king_n unto_o god_n rev._n 1.6_o and_o chap._n
5.10_o reign_v on_o the_o earth_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a death_n eph._n 2._o and_o 1_o tim._n 5.8_o and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n gal._n 2.21_o 3._o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n spiritual_a from_o the_o death_n and_o dominion_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v it_o joh._n 5.25_o the_o dead_a shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o live_v and_o this_o be_v the_o inbringing_a of_o many_o to_o the_o gospel_n or_o the_o break_n out_o of_o it_o which_o be_v call_v a_o resurrection_n rom._n 11._o as_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n universal_a in_o the_o great_a day_n mention_v ver_fw-la 12._o i_o say_v then_o these_o word_n here_o be_v spiritual_o to_o be_v understand_v especial_o though_o not_o only_o as_o be_v clear_a for_o 1._o this_o dominion_n and_o reign_n be_v on_o the_o earth_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o proper_a but_o figurative_a see_v clear_a scripture_n promise_v no_o such_o earthly_a temporal_a kingdom_n to_o saint_n but_o warn_v they_o to_o be_v always_o look_v for_o the_o cross_n and_o affliction_n which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n freedom_n and_o temporal_a reign_n 2._o this_o be_v a_o dominion_n common_a to_o all_o saint_n as_o saint_n for_o the_o world_n now_o be_v divide_v in_o dead_a or_o unregenerate_a and_o live_v that_o be_v believer_n and_o all_o these_o live_a be_v martyr_n and_o such_o as_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o beast_n mark_v which_o be_v the_o character_n chap._n 13_o 14._o and_o 17._o of_o all_o the_o elect_a whereby_o be_v understand_v all_o true_a believer_n but_o no_o temporal_a kingdom_n be_v promise_v to_o all_o saint_n as_o saint_n but_o what_o be_v spiritual_a be_v promise_v ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n yea_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o for_o if_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v temporal_a king_n who_o shall_v they_o command_v who_o shall_v be_v their_o subject_n yet_o without_o any_o confusion_n spiritual_a dominion_n will_v agree_v to_o they_o all_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v to_o govern_v the_o reprobate_n who_o continue_v dead_a for_o 1._o that_o will_v imply_v a_o distinct_a discernible_a separation_n even_o hereaway_n as_o if_o no_o hypocrite_n can_v lurk_v 2._o the_o text_n suppose_v the_o church_n visible_a and_o these_o without_o to_o be_v separate_v as_o have_v their_o own_o ruler_n which_o appear_v in_o god_n undertake_v afterward_o who_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o they_o 3._o there_o behove_v to_o be_v many_o kingdom_n if_o every_o saint_n have_v one_o now_o when_o they_o be_v multiply_v and_o the_o wicked_a few_o this_o be_v a_o reign_n especial_o of_o soul_n and_o it_o be_v not_o for_o nought_o so_o express_v here_o as_o there_o be_v a_o soul-merchandise_n hint_v at_o by_o this_o expression_n chap._n 18.4_o so_o these_o live_v and_o reign_v as_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v dead_a and_o in_o bondage_n and_o enjoy_v not_o that_o resurrection_n but_o that_o be_v spiritual_o to_o be_v understand_v they_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o not_o raise_v thus_o to_o reign_v therefore_o so_o must_v the_o reign_n of_o saint_n and_o their_o life_n on_o the_o contrary_n be_v spiritual_a for_o in_o this_o only_o they_o be_v singular_a 5._o it_o be_v a_o dominion_n at_o this_o time_n as_o common_a to_o all_o saint_n so_o peculiar_a to_o they_o and_o common_a to_o none_o other_o but_o no_o question_n many_o reprobate_n have_v yet_o dominion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o so_o live_v without_o the_o church_n for_o gog_n and_o magog_n have_v their_o own_o magistrate_n then_o and_o be_v say_v to_o come_v against_o the_o saint_n and_o not_o to_o rebel_v against_o they_o which_o will_v have_v be_v true_a if_o saint_n only_o have_v bear_v dominion_n and_o rule_n over_o these_o and_o when_o the_o devil_n go_v out_o to_o the_o four_o wind_n it_o suppon_v great_a and_o large_a territory_n to_o be_v even_o then_o without_o the_o church_n which_o certain_o want_v not_o temporal_a rule_n 6._o it_o be_v such_o a_o dominion_n as_o christ_n have_v for_o they_o reign_v with_o he_o as_o therefore_o his_o kingdom_n be_v on_o earth_n so_o be_v they_o but_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o be_v spiritual_a therefore_o so_o be_v they_o for_o this_o to_o reign_v with_o christ_n speak_v not_o any_o new_a way_n of_o christ_n reign_v but_o speak_v a_o new_a accession_n to_o his_o kingdom_n of_o other_o coming-in_n to_o partake_v of_o it_o with_o he_o and_o be_v certain_o to_o show_v what_o sort_n of_o kingdom_n this_o be_v which_o the_o saint_n shall_v have_v and_o to_o contradistinguish_v it_o from_o that_o dominion_n that_o be_v worldly_a 7._o it_o be_v such_o a_o reign_n on_o earth_n as_o all_o the_o saint_n have_v in_o respect_n of_o kind_n though_o not_o for_o degree_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o covenant_n and_o kingdom_n and_o the_o same_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o all_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o that_o be_v spiritual_a they_o all_o chap._n 5.10_o so_o reign_v on_o the_o earth_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n 8._o it_o be_v such_o a_o reign_n as_o it_o be_v a_o priesthood_n so_o be_v they_o king_n as_o they_o be_v priest_n see_v vers_fw-la 6._o these_o partaker_n of_o this_o resurrection_n be_v priest_n to_o god_n but_o their_o priesthood_n be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o again_o of_o offer_v outward_a sacrifice_n so_o must_v also_o therefore_o be_v their_o dominion_n and_o kingdom_n 9_o certain_o spiritual_a mercy_n be_v the_o best_a and_o the_o church_n condition_n that_o flow_v and_o abound_v most_o in_o these_o must_v be_v the_o best_a condition_n see_v then_o this_o be_v the_o church_n best_a condition_n speak_v of_o it_o must_v therefore_o be_v especial_o understand_v spiritual_o for_o what_o be_v commend_v here_o be_v not_o as_o simple_o commendable_a to_o man_n but_o as_o commendable_a in_o a_o church_n and_o peculiar_a to_o she_o as_o such_o object_n if_o it_o be_v say_v here_o then_o nothing_o peculiar_a be_v promise_v to_o saint_n or_o believer_n in_o this_o time_n see_v that_o dominion_n agree_v to_o saint_n at_o all_o time_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v absurd_a therefore_o something_o more_o must_v be_v here_o answ._n that_o be_v grant_v that_o something_o more_o be_v here_o as_o be_v say_v for_o 1._o now_o saint_n not_o only_o reign_v singular_o over_o their_o own_o lust_n but_o joint_o in_o visible_a church_n and_o in_o a_o church-estate_n have_v all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o word_n sacrament_n and_o discipline_n among_o they_o and_o these_o in_o more_o purity_n power_n and_o fruit_n than_o for_o any_o time_n before_o and_o in_o long_a continuance_n the_o stamp_n of_o god_n authority_n on_o his_o ordinance_n shall_v be_v more_o sensible_a now_o than_o before_o 2._o though_o it_o be_v not_o a_o temporal_a thing_n that_o their_o reign_v consist_v in_o yet_o shall_v they_o have_v more_o temporal_a freedom_n than_o former_o the_o devil_n shall_v not_o mar_v the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o by_o open_a violence_n nor_o by_o antichrist_n deceit_n but_o still_o there_o shall_v be_v church_n either_o in_o kingdom_n where_o they_o shall_v have_v law_n and_o allowance_n for_o their_o profession_n or_o among_o enemy_n and_o their_o enemy_n shall_v be_v restrain_v from_o be_v able_a to_o put_v they_o in_o such_o doleful_a condition_n as_o they_o have_v former_o be_v into_o thus_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v countenance_v with_o public_a authority_n which_o be_v chap._n 12._o and_o beside_o they_o shall_v have_v freedom_n against_o antichrist_n dominion_n with_o a_o more_o full_a performance_n of_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o have_v not_o then_o a_o seven_o thing_n concern_v this_o dominion_n be_v clear_a that_o it_o imply_v as_o more_o spiritual_a so_o more_o temporal_a peace_n and_o freedom_n than_o at_o any_o other_o time_n put_v the_o continuance_n of_o it_o and_o all_o together_o and_o though_o it_o do_v not_o main_o and_o especial_o yet_o in_o some_o measure_n it_o do_v take_v in_o outward_a peace_n in_o their_o condition_n also_o which_o appear_v 1._o from_o satan_n eminent_a restraint_n which_o have_v influence_n also_o on_o the_o church_n temporal_a peace_n as_o well_o as_o spiritual_a so_o it_o follow_v in_o some_o part_n as_o the_o other_o 2._o it_o appear_v from_o the_o event_n after_o his_o lose_n their_o temporal_a peace_n be_v then_o mar_v therefore_o they_o have_v it_o by_o the_o devil_n restraint_n in_o some_o measure_n otherwise_o they_o reign_v when_o gog_n be_v high_a as_o before_o spiritual_o in_o a_o good_a measure_n 3._o the_o point_v out_o of_o this_o reign_n as_o have_v a_o more_o continue_a eminent_a honourable_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o common_a to_o other_o time_n and_o it_o be_v opposite_a probable_o to_o the_o saint_n suffer_v time_n also_o when_o their_o
multitude_n of_o professor_n and_o liberty_n to_o be_v worship_v so_o do_v they_o by_o partake_v joint_o of_o all_o these_o in_o and_o with_o christ._n so_o to_o reign_v with_o christ_n differ_v 1._o from_o reign_v simple_o 2._o from_o christ_n reign_v with_o they_o as_o if_o he_o take_v share_v with_o they_o no_o but_o he_o admit_v they_o to_o share_v with_o he_o 3._o it_o differ_v from_o christ_n reign_v in_o they_o which_o be_v mere_o spiritual_a and_o always_o continual_a this_o be_v in_o a_o outward_a enjoy_n of_o the_o ordinance_n visible_a as_o fellowship_n invisible_a and_o a_o freedom_n in_o these_o and_o their_o reign_n be_v more_o or_o less_o according_a as_o christ_n be_v therefore_o must_v necessary_o consist_v in_o enjoy_v such_o thing_n as_o these_o by_o which_o he_o reign_v 2._o the_o good_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o saint_n ver_fw-la 5._o be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o sad_a condition_n that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v in_o all_z that_o time_n they_o live_v not_o again_o and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v what_o life_n they_o live_v not_o again_o it_o be_v add_v this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n not_o the_o second_o which_o be_v common_a both_o to_o good_a and_o bad_a dan._n 12.1_o 2._o there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o verse_n to_o be_v clear_v 1._o who_o these_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v who_o be_v oppose_v to_o these_o who_o live_v ver_fw-la 4._o in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o of_o these_o heart_n enemy_n and_o persecuter_n who_o have_v still_o a_o succession_n of_o the_o like_a in_o the_o world_n they_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n dead_a that_o live_v in_o the_o world_n eph._n 2._o but_o some_o continue_v so_o 1_o tim._n 5._o as_o the_o widow_n that_o be_v dead_a while_o she_o live_v and_o matth._n 8._o let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a so_o here_o they_o be_v account_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a even_o all_o who_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o martyr_n as_o all_o contradistinguish_v from_o the_o martyr_n who_o former_o be_v dead_a but_o now_o live_v 2._o it_o be_v say_v they_o do_v not_o live_v that_o be_v enjoy_v the_o former_a happy_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n or_o do_v not_o come_v to_o that_o way_n of_o persecute_v the_o church_n active_o as_o they_o have_v do_v before_o and_o be_v to_o do_v after_o these_o thousand_o year_n in_o which_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o church_n consist_v the_o life_n of_o their_o predecessor_n the_o persecuter_n as_o these_o that_o be_v saint_n now_o die_v in_o their_o predecessor_n the_o martyr_n so_o contra_fw-la these_o wicked_a do_v live_v and_o reign_v in_o their_o predecessor_n the_o persecuter_n while_o the_o church_n be_v martyr_v but_o now_o be_v as_o dead_a man_n bind_v up_o and_o restrain_v from_o act_v that_o life_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o live_v and_o thus_o it_o seem_v to_o consist_v with_o their_o live_n after_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v past_a which_o be_v not_o as_o if_o they_o be_v convert_v but_o let_v loose_a again_o to_o their_o old_a exercise_n these_o that_o be_v hypocrite_n before_o vent_v now_o their_o enimity_n more_o and_o wicked_a man_n former_o restrain_v now_o aim_v to_o bring-und_a again_o christ_n church_n 3._o from_o this_o we_o may_v expound_v what_o be_v say_v till_o the_o thousand_o year_n expire_v as_o the_o term_n of_o their_o deadness_n for_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o bodily_a rise_n again_o for_o yet_o the_o resurrection_n be_v not_o come_v nor_o spiritual_a rise_n again_o for_o the_o number_n of_o saint_n be_v rather_o few_o after_o this_o resurrection_n and_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v past_a than_o more_o but_o as_o there_o be_v a_o life_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n so_o be_v there_o a_o life_n of_o corruption_n and_o of_o the_o wicked_a and_o wickedness_n which_o may_v for_o a_o time_n be_v restrain_v now_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n wickedness_n and_o wicked_a man_n live_v that_o be_v do_v break_v out_o in_o their_o enimity_n against_o the_o church_n to_o persecute_v again_o by_o gog_n and_o magog_n as_o if_o personal_o they_o be_v rise_v and_o persecution_n that_o be_v almost_o seem_v to_o be_v dead_a be_v revive_v thus_o see_v satan_n bind_n have_v a_o term_n and_o the_o saint_n reign_v a_o term_n it_o be_v suitable_a also_o that_o the_o death_n of_o these_o wicked_a man_n here_o understand_v have_v a_o term_n also_o which_o can_v be_v no_o otherwise_o than_o this_o hence_o these_o three_o be_v still_o observable_a 1._o satan_n lose_n the_o saint_n die_v and_o the_o persecuter_n live_v before_o the_o thousand_o year_n 2._o satan_n bind_v the_o saint_n live_v and_o the_o persecuter_n die_v during_o that_o time_n not_o simple_o but_o in_o part_n so_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n satan_n be_v loose_a again_o the_o church_n in_o hazard_n again_o and_o her_o good_a condition_n interrupt_v and_o so_o the_o persecuter_n they_o get_v life_n and_o heart_n again_o which_o be_v like_o that_o heal_n of_o the_o wound_n chap._n 13._o of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n not_o in_o the_o same_o person_n but_o in_o a_o successor_n with_o the_o same_o principle_n and_o the_o give_a life_n again_o to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n vers_fw-la 13_o 14._o and_o so_o the_o saint_n their_o live_n and_o die_v will_v answer_v well_o to_o the_o persecuter_n die_v and_o live_v if_o any_o object_n that_o these_o dead_a be_v suppose_v to_o be_v dead_a before_o the_o thousand_o year_n ans._n observe_v for_o clear_v it_o his_o manner_n of_o comparison_n for_o the_o world_n precede_v that_o time_n be_v as_o it_o be_v divide_v in_o these_o two_o martyr_n and_o confessor_n keep_v themselves_o free_a and_o persecuter_n both_o these_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o dead_a again_o the_o church_n or_o generation_n succeed_v during_o these_o thousand_o year_n be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o raise_n again_o of_o that_o former_a generation_n now_o say_v he_o the_o difference_n between_o this_o generation_n and_o what_o go_v before_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a that_o man_n will_v think_v that_o all_o the_o former_a martyr_n and_o honest_a christian_n be_v bring_v to_o life_n again_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o but_o for_o the_o persecuter_n that_o live_v in_o their_o time_n they_o shall_v not_o appear_v so_o as_o they_o former_o do_v during_o that_o time_n in_o which_o respect_n they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dead_a and_o not_o to_o rise_v because_o once_o they_o be_v numerous_a and_o now_o it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o though_o this_o can_v universal_o as_o yet_o be_v say_v yet_o in_o this_o and_o other_o nation_n bless_a be_v god_n if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o have_v become_v of_o former_a sincere_a christian_n it_o may_v be_v answer_v they_o be_v live_v again_o in_o their_o successor_n but_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o pope_n and_o open_a persecuter_n that_o once_o prevail_v here_o it_o may_v be_v say_v they_o be_v dead_a and_o not_o arisen_a but_o be_v in_o their_o grave_n and_o by_o god_n blessing_n may_v not_o that_o which_o in_o so_o great_a part_n be_v fulfil_v in_o some_o nation_n be_v in_o due_a time_n extend_v to_o other_o and_o so_o here_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a import_v no_o more_o but_o that_o they_o be_v find_v in_o a_o dead_a state_n during_o these_o thousand_o year_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o again_o recover_v what_o they_o lose_v by_o it_o till_o these_o thousand_o year_n be_v expire_v and_o thus_o they_o be_v rather_o suppose_v to_o be_v live_v before_o it_o and_o interrupt_v by_o it_o which_o again_o they_o recover_v in_o their_o successor_n gog_n and_o magog_n when_o it_o be_v finish_v and_o this_o we_o conceive_v do_v answer_v the_o scope_n this_o be_v call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n it_o be_v 1._o apply_v to_o spiritual_a live_n again_o joh._n 5._o 23_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v oppose_v to_o sinful_a death_n or_o death_n in_o sin_n and_o so_o resurrection_n to_o glory_n be_v distinguish_v from_o it_o thus_o all_o saint_n at_o all_o time_n rise_v as_o they_o be_v make_v to_o believe_v and_o this_o be_v personal_a and_o can_v be_v feclude_v here_o 2._o resurrection_n be_v take_v oftentimes_o as_o of_o church_n and_o nation_n as_o rom._n 11._o of_o the_o jew_n incoming_a and_o conversion_n and_o ezek._n 37._o whenas_o the_o church_n spread_v so_o as_o if_o a_o nation_n be_v bear_v in_o one_o day_n isa._n 66._o or_o as_o if_o all_o the_o former_a saint_n which_o be_v lose_v as_o to_o man_n be_v again_o like_o rachel_n child_n restore_v as_o it_o be_v jer._n 31._o vers_fw-la 15_o 16_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v after_o a_o eclipse_n when_o visible_o the_o church_n
god_n do_v begin_v to_o be_v their_o god_n which_o to_o his_o own_o be_v true_a in_o all_o age_n but_o 1._o that_o now_o god_n be_v manifest_o know_v to_o be_v their_o god_n 2._o that_o now_o they_o reap_v full_o the_o enjoyment_n and_o advantage_n of_o their_o right_n to_o have_v he_o their_o god_n 3._o they_o get_v now_o the_o possession_n of_o he_o who_o in_o right_n and_o title_n be_v their_o portion_n before_o they_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v god_n their_o god_n when_o he_o become_v all_o in_o all_o to_o they_o and_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o his_o fullness_n and_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v it_o say_v that_o the_o fruit_n and_o substance_n of_o that_o great_a covenant-promise_n i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n be_v never_o well_o know_v nor_o take_v up_o till_o they_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v the_o place_n wherein_o the_o fullness_n of_o this_o promise_n stream_v out_o to_o believer_n it_o be_v a_o word_n that_o set_v forth_o the_o height_n of_o happiness_n to_o be_v in_o the_o enjoy_n of_o god_n the_o promise_n whereof_o be_v the_o great_a substance_n of_o the_o covenant_n here_o that_o be_v give_v to_o his_o people_n in_o these_o word_n leu._n 26.10_o 11._o and_o ezek._n 37._o gen._n 17.2_o gor._n 6.18_o there_o be_v more_o happiness_n in_o have_v god_n to_o be_v our_o god_n than_o we_o can_v believe_v yet_o this_o in_o right_n may_v be_v here_o and_o the_o right_a improve_n and_o use-making_a of_o this_o will_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n be_v heaven_n upon_o earth_n vers._n 4._o the_o happiness_n of_o their_o estate_n as_o it_o be_v free_a from_o all_o the_o contrary_n and_o opposite_n of_o blessedness_n be_v set_v forth_o 1._o general_o in_o wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n 2._o more_o particular_o in_o remove_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o as_o death_n sorrow_n cry_v etc._n etc._n 3._o in_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o for_o all_o former_a thing_n be_v go_v therefore_o these_o be_v do_v away_o and_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o condition_n be_v now_o new_a some_o of_o these_o expression_n be_v chap._n 7._o borrow_v from_o the_o prophet_n that_o point_n at_o a_o excellent_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n because_o the_o true_a beauty_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o that_o in_o heaven_n as_o the_o former_a promise_n do_v clear_a that_o beauty_n of_o heaven_n be_v but_o that_o begin_v glory_n complete_v and_o perfect_v which_o be_v not_o at_o perfection_n here_o till_o it_o come_v there_o but_o the_o scope_n differ_v in_o this_o that_o there_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o gospel-church_n be_v hold_v forth_o principal_o after_o antichrist_n begin_v ruin_n but_o here_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o same_o church_n in_o heaven_n after_o the_o final_a and_o full_a overturning_a of_o all_o enemy_n as_o be_v clear_a before_o the_o general_a freedom_n of_o this_o happy_a condition_n be_v that_o god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n which_o be_v speak_v not_o only_o comparative_o with_o their_o former_a estate_n as_o it_o be_v use_v by_o isa._n 60._o and_o possible_o chap._n 7._o but_o here_o it_o be_v simple_o to_o be_v understand_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o then_o any_o sorrow_n or_o cause_n of_o sorrow_n or_o weep_v but_o though_o there_o be_v tear_n on_o their_o cheek_n all_o their_o journey_n over_o which_o be_v here_o suppose_a yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n no_o tear_n shall_v enter_v with_o they_o god_n himself_o as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o napkin_n by_o his_o tenderness_n to_o they_o and_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o love_n shall_v put_v a_o end_n to_o their_o weep_n there_o shall_v never_o be_v any_o more_o a_o tear_n among_o they_o all_o and_o that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o wipe_v etc._n etc._n add_v to_o the_o consolation_n more_o particular_o their_o freedom_n be_v set_v down_o in_o four_o thing_n ordinary_o accompany_v all_o live_n 1._o death_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o death_n there_o which_o allude_v unto_o or_o rather_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o that_o isa._n 25._o which_o 1_o cor._n 15._o the_o apostle_n make_v clear_o a_o qualification_n of_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v fulfil_v after_o the_o resurrection_n there_o and_o there_o only_o shall_v be_v immortality_n and_o eternal_a life_n neither_o first_o nor_o second_o death_n enter_v there_o but_o both_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n as_o chap._n 20._o or_o be_v without_o this_o city_n to_o which_o this_o do_v especial_o relate_v 2._o there_o be_v no_o sorrow_n nor_o grief_n there_o it_o be_v proper_o such_o a_o sorrow_n as_o be_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o friend_n or_o such_o a_o cross_n when_o some_o good_a thing_n be_v take_v away_o there_o be_v none_o such_o there_o no_o wife_n in_o heaven_n bewail_v her_o husband_n or_o mother_n her_o child_n rachel_n will_v not_o weep_v for_o her_o child_n there_o nor_o be_v friend_n separate_v from_o friend_n there_o jonathan_n be_v not_o heavy_a to_o sunder_v with_o david_n there_o nor_o any_o man_n mourn_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o a_o crown_n or_o kingdom_n or_o house_n or_o estate_n or_o for_o any_o loss_n whatsoever_o 3._o there_o be_v no_o cry_v there_o there_o be_v no_o violent_a or_o hasty_a surprizing_n which_o take_v in_o all_o cross_n that_o bring_v hurt_v upon_o any_o there_o be_v no_o invade_v of_o kingdom_n storm_v of_o town_n kill_v or_o slaughter_n or_o roar_v of_o violent_a enemy_n actiu_o do_v wrong_a or_o of_o poor_a soul_n cry_v out_o under_o and_o passiu_o suffer_v wrong_v or_o oppression_n neither_o of_o these_o be_v in_o heaven_n 4._o in_o that_o city_n there_o be_v no_o pai●_n nor_o suffer_v whether_o from_o external_a cause_n of_o violence_n or_o inward_a infirmity_n of_o body_n or_o challenge_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o land_n will_v not_o say_v they_o be_v sick_a isa._n 33._o in_o a_o word_n the_o body_n be_v so_o free_v from_o corruption_n as_o there_o be_v no_o external_a cause_n to_o hurt_v it_o neither_o any_o internal_a tendency_n to_o any_o disease_n but_o absolute_a freedom_n from_o all_o effect_n of_o sin_n no_o sickness_n be_v there_o more_o than_o death_n no_o gout_n nor_o gravel_n all_o these_o be_v remove_v and_o for_o aggravation_n of_o this_o happiness_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v these_o expression_n set_v down_o 1._o as_o taking-in_a all_o these_o thing_n conduce_v to_o happiness_n 2._o not_o only_o be_v there_o a_o remove_n of_o these_o but_o the_o contrary_a privilege_n follow_v to_o wit_n quietness_n life_n comfort_n joy_n etc._n etc._n 3._o that_o these_o be_v eminent_o there_o in_o heaven_n and_o only_o there_o in_o this_o degree_n 4._o that_o these_o enjoy_v this_o happiness_n and_o life_n eternal_o and_o unchangable_o for_o now_o no_o more_o death_n or_o pain_n or_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o kind_n be_v to_o trouble_v they_o the_o confirmation_n be_v add_v in_o a_o word_n for_o the_o former_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o that_o be_v all_o the_o former_a dispensation_n towards_o the_o church_n its_o cross_n and_o suffering_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o its_o fight_a or_o be_v militant_a these_o now_o be_v pass_v and_o change_v which_o must_v certain_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n final_a and_o external_a change_n 1._o because_o so_o these_o thing_n call_v the_o former_a in_o opposition_n to_o the_o church_n now_o glorify_v condition_n be_v pass_v away_o as_o the_o old_a heaven_n be_v then_o this_o change_n be_v universal_a in_o all_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o full_a change_n on_o the_o world_n 2._o because_o these_o former_a thing_n of_o death_n pain_n etc._n etc._n be_v never_o away_o till_o the_o end_n for_o if_o they_o be_v suppose_v contemporary_a with_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n during_o these_o thousand_o year_n then_o certain_o gog_n and_o magog_n be_v to_o follow_v that_o with_o death_n and_o cry_v it_o must_v therefore_o be_v after_o all_o the_o church_n trial_n and_o so_o after_o gog_n and_o magog_n who_o not_o long_o precede_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o this_o renew_n of_o all_o make_v a_o excellent_a change_n to_o the_o godly_a and_o no_o more_o can_v it_o be_v understand_v what_o the_o happiness_n of_o their_o lot_n be_v than_o that_o which_o eye_n never_o see_v nor_o ear_n hear_v nor_o yet_o can_v enter_v into_o man_n heart_n to_o consider_v this_o be_v every_o way_n new_a to_o man_n the_o second_o voice_n which_o come_v in_o to_o confirm_v the_o same_o thing_n be_v ver_fw-la 5._o of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n that_o be_v the_o lamb_n who_o be_v judge_n chap._n 20._o style_v here_o by_o the_o name_n he_o take_v to_o himself_o chap._n 1._o to_o
expression_n yet_o do_v the_o thing_n enjoy_v in_o heaven_n exceed_v the_o expression_n as_o far_o as_o the_o maker_n do_v h●s_n work_n and_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a exceed_v what_o be_v finite_a for_o expression_n can_v be_v get_v adequat_fw-la and_o suitable_a to_o the_o thing_n the_o second_o expression_n show_v how_o this_o be_v make_v out_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n this_o comprehend_v all_o yea_o it_o be_v add_v as_o a_o addition_n to_o all_o thing_n ●_o it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v god_n son_n and_o to_o have_v he_o our_o god_n than_o to_o enjoy_v all_o thing_n beside_o to_o be_v his_o son_n and_o so_o his_o heir_n and_o joynt-heir_n with_o christ_n rom._n 8.17_o what_o be_v that_o or_o rather_o what_o be_v it_o not_o here_o now_o be_v a_o portion_n who_o will_v covet_v let_v they_o covet_v this_o as_o the_o best_a thing_n one_o day_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o will_v appear_v what_o great_a blessedness_n be_v here_o when_o once_o his_o wrath_n be_v but_o a_o little_a kindle_v psal._n 2._o ult_n o_o set_v your_o heart_n on_o this_o it_o be_v the_o short_a cut_n to_o possess_v and_o inherit_v all_o thing_n who_o in_o all_o the_o world_n ever_o reach_v to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o earth_n yet_o that_o be_v little_a among_o all_o thing_n but_o a_o believer_n inherit_v earth_n heaven_n god_n christ_n glory_n peace_n his_o soul_n even_o all_o thing_n for_o god_n be_v he_o and_o with_o he_o all_o thing_n 1_o cor._n 3.22_o 23._o and_o will_v he_o not_o give_v to_o he_o all_o thing_n rom._n 8.32_o yea_o be_v he_o not_o himself_o all_o thing_n as_o be_v say_v so_o that_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o soul_n can_v wish_v no_o more_o psal._n 73.25_o see_v on_o vers_fw-la 3._o the_o condition_n be_v overcome_v which_o imply_v 1._o a_o fight_n with_o a_o world_n of_o enemy_n and_o corruption_n 2._o a_o serious_a fight_n and_o constant_a war_n as_o for_o life_n 3._o a_o difficult_a fight_n yet_o 4._o a_o victory_n and_o overcome_v of_o all_o these_o enemy_n before_o there_o can_v be_v a_o obtain_n of_o all_o thing_n this_o say_v folk_n will_v not_o slip_v nor_o sleep_v into_o these_o excellent_a promise_n and_o though_o fight_v be_v not_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o these_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o way_n to_o they_o and_o a_o antecedent_n go_v before_o they_o necessary_o though_o not_o the_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la to_o our_o justification_n yet_o it_o be_v so_o to_o our_o glorification_n this_o thirst_v import_v engage_v and_o covenant_v isa._n 55.3_o overcome_v a_o be_v answerable_a to_o our_o engagement_n observe_v it_o then_o and_o wrestle_v so_o as_o you_o may_v obtain_v see_v so_o much_o depend_v on_o it_o and_o happy_a be_v he_o that_o overcome_v he_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o enjoy_v all_o thing_n and_o yet_o none_o of_o they_o enjoy_v another_o portion_n to_o one_o another_o prejudice_n but_o as_o man_n now_o enjoy_v the_o whole_a sun_n and_o its_o light_n and_o wrong_v not_o other_o by_o it_o so_o then_o all_o shall_v enjoy_v god_n full_o as_o to_o their_o capacity_n yet_o so_o as_o there_o be_v no_o want_n to_o other_o that_o infinite_a ocean_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v able_a to_o fill_v all_o the_o cup_n that_o come_v to_o it_o or_o be_v casten_z in_o ●t_z and_o be_v such_o that_o all_o may_v also_o swim_v in_o it_o when_o they_o be_v full_a and_o that_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o to_o shine_v on_o all_o and_o to_o make_v shine_v all_o the_o eye_n that_o shall_v behold_v he_o the_o qualification_n to_o say_v so_o of_o these_o exclude_v on_o the_o other_o part_n be_v set_v down_o ver_fw-la 8._o and_o we_o conceive_v for_o these_o end_n 1._o to_o press_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o former_a offer_n from_o the_o ill_a of_o miss_v it_o which_o be_v the_o main_a scope_n 2._o to_o show_v that_o every_o one_o overcome_v not_o and_o so_o come_v not_o there_o 3._o to_o show_v who_o overcome_v not_o to_o wit_n these_o that_o lie_v under_o the_o practice_n of_o sinful_a lust_n as_o here_o by_o these_o sort_n understand_v all_o other_o sinful_a wretch_n lie_v in_o sin_n as_o if_o they_o be_v express_v the_o most_o abominable_a sort_n whereof_o be_v indeed_o name_v yet_o not_o at_o all_o to_o exclude_v other_o by_o it_o we_o may_v see_v also_o that_o this_o must_v be_v heaven_n for_o these_o that_o get_v not_o these_o good_a promise_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n and_o second_o death_n o_o what_o great_a odds_o be_v there_o between_o the_o end_n of_o sin_n and_o holiness_n what_o ever_o man_n now_o think_v it_o will_v one_o day_n yea_o in_o that_o day_n appear_v in_o its_o native_a colour_n these_o particular_a step_n or_o sort_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n eight_o be_v mention_v to_o show_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o way_n to_o glory_n but_o many_o sin_n whereby_o man_n pass_v to_o destruction_n 2._o that_o by_o the_o set_n down_o of_o these_o more_o particular_o the_o happiness_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o qualification_n of_o these_o who_o enter_v it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o conspicuous_a be_v put_v together_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o sinner_n that_o be_v exclude_v be_v the_o fearful_a or_o coward_n opposite_a to_o the_o former_a fighter_n and_o overcomer_n it_o be_v not_o these_o who_o be_v fear_v to_o come_v short_a heb._n 4.1_o nor_o these_o that_o fear_v to_o sin_n and_o desire_v to_o prevent_v it_o heb._n 11.7_o nor_o such_o that_o fear_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o good_a or_o that_o they_o be_v presume_v as_o the_o woman_n mark_v 5._o and_o 33._o but_o such_o as_o 1._o dare_v act_n nothing_o for_o christ_n be_v coward_n and_o not_o valiant_a for_o he_o though_o not_o direct_o against_o he_o such_o as_o fear_v they_o that_o can_v kill_v the_o body_n matth_n 10._o sway_n with_o every_o corrupt_a time_n as_o the_o beast_n magog_n etc._n etc._n and_o can_v fight_v against_o they_o to_o any_o hazard_n but_o forsake_v christ._n 2._o such_o as_o be_v fear_v to_o fight_v against_o lust_n and_o never_o appear_v against_o they_o in_o the_o field_n the_o weak_a heart_n ezek._n 16._o be_v evil_a such_o a_o fear_n as_o the_o evil_a servant_n have_v matth._n 25.25_o which_o make_v man_n lazy_a in_o holy_a duty_n and_o trade_n for_o christ_n as_o if_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o they_o the_o sluggard_n say_v there_o be_v a_o lion_n in_o the_o way_n this_o be_v he_o who_o shift_v duty_n 3._o such_o as_o dare_v venture_v to_o suffer_v nothing_o for_o christ_n as_o the_o worthy_n do_v heb._n 11._o the_o second_o sort_n be_v unbeliever_n not_o proper_o or_o only_a infidel_n much_o less_o these_o who_o be_v of_o a_o weak_a or_o little_a faith_n that_o be_v mix_v with_o doubt_v and_o want_v peace_n but_o such_o as_o never_o receive_v the_o free_a offer_n of_o christ_n grace_n indeed_o whatever_o their_o profession_n be_v that_o never_o do_v flee_v from_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n to_o rest_v on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n these_o be_v joh._n 3.36_o condemn_v already_o and_o this_o unbelief_n shall_v condemn_v as_o much_o as_o any_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o day_n it_o will_v condemn_v that_o you_o believe_v not_o according_a to_o that_o command_n 1_o joh._n 3.23_o as_o to_o be_v a_o murderer_n to_o be_v a_o witch_n or_o a_o warloch_n quest._n how_o differ_v it_o from_o weak_a faith_n answ._n weak_a faith_n have_v a_o sure_a ground_n but_o a_o weak_a grip_n of_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v fear_v for_o it_o but_o unbelief_n have_v a_o weak_a ground_n but_o think_v its_o grip_n sure_a therefore_o it_o be_v not_o trouble_v 2._o weak_a faith_n have_v much_o fear_n of_o unbelief_n mark_v 9.24_o and_o will_v be_v rid_v of_o it_o this_o unbelief_n be_v willing_o and_o so_o wrestle_v not_o against_o unbelief_n but_o against_o doubt_v and_o fear_n lest_o its_o security_n be_v mar_v 3._o weak_a faith_n be_v clear_a of_o its_o own_o need_n and_o christ_n fullness_n but_o its_o weakness_n be_v in_o its_o peace_n or_o its_o grip_v of_o he_o or_o bide_v by_o he_o and_o as_o to_o the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n it_o find_v these_o weak_a to_o say_v so_o but_o unbelief_n be_v clear_a of_o its_o peace_n than_o of_o its_o need_n etc._n etc._n and_o whether_o we_o take_v unbelief_n as_o a_o fail_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n by_o presumption_n or_o on_o the_o left_a by_o despare_n both_o be_v unbelief_n and_o opposite_a to_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o be_v exclude_v here_o the_o three_o sort_n be_v abominable_a who_o by_o sin_n against_o nature_n have_v make_v themselves_o vile_a now_o these_o be_v reckon_v with_o such_o be_v these_o in_o sodom_n and_o these_o rom._n 1.26_o etc._n etc._n the_o four_o sort_n
5._o in_o four_o thing_n 1._o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o intermission_n of_o that_o happy_a day_n no_o night_n be_v there_o no_o vicissitude_n or_o change_n but_o a_o unchangeable_a day_n they_o be_v above_o the_o up_n and_o down_n which_o all_o the_o three_o principal_a prophecy_n be_v obnoxious_a unto_o 2._o they_o need_v no_o candle_n no_o borrow_a or_o artificial_a light_n darkness_n be_v remove_v and_o that_o which_o be_v in_o part_n be_v do_v away_o 1_o cor._n 13._o and_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a be_v come_v and_o knowledge_n be_v at_o a_o height_n and_o perfection_n so_o that_o though_o there_o be_v candle_n or_o sun_n and_o moon_n here_o and_o they_o be_v needful_a yet_o not_o so_o there_o 3._o the_o lord_n give_v they_o light_n they_o have_v light_n and_o immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o without_o all_o interveen_a mean_n then_o shall_v there_o be_v no_o mistake_n of_o god_n but_o in_o that_o day_n we_o shall_v know_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n 4._o they_o reign_v and_o that_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o not_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n but_o eternal_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v certain_o oppose_v to_o the_o former_a chap._n 20._o and_o this_o of_o eternity_n be_v add_v as_o of_o special_a use_n in_o their_o happiness_n for_o if_o it_o be_v want_v all_o their_o other_o happiness_n will_v be_v defective_a o_o happy_a kingdom_n and_o state_n that_o can_v be_v alter_v there_o be_v no_o waver_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v here_o kingdom_n on_o earth_n have_v their_o period_n but_o this_o have_v none_o but_o endless_a eternity_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n must_v be_v a_o great_a happiness_n there_o be_v no_o life_n to_o that_o with_o all_o the_o property_n of_o uncontroverted_a happiness_n 2._o to_o be_v god_n servant_n must_v be_v a_o great_a happiness_n it_o be_v reckon_v one_o in_o heaven_n 3._o be_v comfort_v o_o believer_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n and_o holy_o long_a to_o be_v there_o there_o be_v no_o night_n nor_o corruption_n there_o the_o heart_n be_v stay_v there_o his_o servant_n serve_v he_o without_o gad_v or_o weary_v and_o be_v the_o more_o holy_o submissive_a for_o that_o end_v all_o complaint_n and_o full_o put_v out_o the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n of_o death_n we_o may_v answer_v two_o question_n by_o assertion_n from_o these_o word_n in_o short_a which_o will_v further_o clear_v they_o quest._n 1._o do_v the_o glorify_a behold_v god_n himself_o how_o can_v that_o be_v see_v he_o be_v invisible_a answ._n they_o see_v not_o his_o essence_n by_o their_o bodily_a eye_n for_o he_o be_v a_o spirit_n 2._o by_o their_o understanding_n they_o see_v not_o his_o essence_n adequat_o or_o perfect_o as_o it_o be_v for_o he_o be_v infinite_a and_o they_o even_o then_o but_o finit_a and_o therefore_o they_o comprehend_v he_o not_o yet_o 3._o beside_o what_o evidence_n of_o his_o glory_n be_v see_v by_o create_a light_n or_o splendour_n about_o he_o as_o there_o be_v much_o of_o that_o or_o what_o shine_v in_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v unconceivable_o glorious_a there_o be_v a_o real_a immediate_a conceive_n and_o take_v up_o of_o god_n though_o not_o full_o comprehensive_a of_o he_o or_o adequat_o unto_o he_o because_o see_v there_o be_v opposite_a to_o faith_n and_o our_o manner_n of_o see_v here_o and_o these_o phrase_n we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v see_v his_o face_n know_v he_o as_o we_o be_v know_v of_o he_o etc._n etc._n confirm_v it_o beside_o every_o thing_n else_o be_v but_o create_v can_v satisfy_v the_o soul_n without_o the_o up_o take_v of_o god_n himself_o who_o only_o can_v stay_v the_o mind_n and_o these_o create_a excellency_n as_o they_o point_v he_o out_o the_o knowledge_n of_o who_o be_v the_o happiness_n of_o angel_n who_o be_v also_o his_o creature_n yet_o neither_o see_v they_o he_o bodily_a nor_o do_v they_o comprehend_v he_o full_o quest._n 2._o do_v then_o all_o see_v and_o enjoy_v he_o alike_o and_o in_o a_o equality_n answ._n in_o this_o sight_n and_o happiness_n consider_v 1._o the_o object_n see_v and_o behold_v 2._o the_o manner_n or_o capacity_n of_o see_v and_o behold_v 3._o the_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n follow_v thereupon_o 1._o the_o object_n of_o this_o happiness_n be_v god_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n there_o be_v one_o object_n to_o all_o 2._o the_o manner_n of_o up-taking_a be_v different_a for_o before_o man_n can_v conceive_v of_o god_n there_o must_v be_v a_o elevate_n or_o capacitate_v of_o they_o by_o heavenly_a qualification_n for_o it_o and_o a_o condescend_v on_o god_n part_n to_o suit_n manifestation_n of_o himself_o to_o their_o capacity_n even_o when_o they_o be_v enlarge_v this_o in_o glory_n as_o here_o in_o grace_n may_v be_v different_a some_o more_o enlarge_v to_o conceive_v more_o of_o god_n some_o less_o yet_o all_o have_v the_o same_o object_n the_o three_o to_o wit_n the_o consolation_n which_o follow_v may_v be_v call_v equal_a in_o some_o respect_n for_o they_o be_v all_o satisfy_v and_o fill_v and_o can_v desire_v no_o more_o yet_o in_o the_o former_a respect_n there_o be_v less_o or_o more_o according_a to_o their_o measure_n god_n 1._o proportion_v they_o to_o speak_v so_o in_o several_a size_n then_o fill_v all_o even_o as_o suppose_v many_o vessel_n of_o diverse_a quantity_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n that_o ocean_n can_v fill_v all_o and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o ocean_n whereof_o they_o be_v all_o full_a yet_o some_o hold_n more_o some_o less_o or_o suppose_v some_o look_v to_o a_o lovely_a object_n that_o be_v more_o or_o less_o able_a to_o discern_v though_o none_o be_v defective_a in_o their_o sight_n all_z behold_v the_o same_o object_n and_o discern_v it_o to_o their_o satisfaction_n though_o some_o see_v it_o more_o distinct_o yet_o all_o of_o they_o satisfy_o so_o it_o be_v here_o in_o behold_v god_n face_n lecture_n ii_o vers._n 6._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o these_o say_n be_v faithful_a and_o true_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n send_v his_o angel_n to_o show_v unto_o his_o servant_n the_o thing_n which_o must_v short_o be_v do_v 7._o behold_v i_o come_v quick_o blessed_a be_v he_o that_o keep_v the_o say_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o this_o book_n 8._o and_o i_o john_n see_v these_o thing_n and_o hear_v they_o and_o when_o i_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v i_o fall_v down_o to_o worship_n before_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o show_v i_o these_o thing_n 9_o then_o say_v he_o unto_o i_o see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow-servant_n and_o of_o thy_o brethren_n the_o prophet_n and_o of_o they_o which_o keep_v the_o say_n of_o this_o book_n worship_n god_n 10._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o seal_v not_o the_o say_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o this_o book_n for_o the_o time_n be_v at_o hand_n 11._o he_o that_o be_v unjust_a let_v he_o be_v unjust_a still_o and_o he_o which_o be_v filthy_a let_v he_o be_v filthy_a still_o and_o he_o that_o be_v righteous_a let_v he_o be_v righteous_a still_o and_o he_o that_o be_v holy_a let_v he_o be_v holy_a still_o 12._o and_o behold_v i_o come_v quick_o and_o my_o reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o give_v every_o man_n according_a as_o his_o work_n shall_v be_v the_o body_n of_o this_o book_n and_o prophecy_n be_v now_o past_a follow_v to_o the_o end_n the_o conclusion_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o confirm_v and_o commend_v of_o the_o whole_a prophecy_n especial_o of_o the_o last_o vision_n it_o have_v five_o part_n 1._o the_o angel_n confirm_v and_o commend_v what_o be_v say_v ver_fw-la 6_o 7._o 2._o there_o be_v a_o mistake_n of_o johns_n record_v ver_fw-la 8._o 3._o the_o angel_n as_o be_v interrupt_v by_o that_o superstitious_a humility_n of_o john_n return_v after_o check_v of_o he_o to_o go_v on_o ver_fw-la 9_o 10_o 11._o then_o 4._o cometh-in_a the_o master_n our_o bless_a lord_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n ver_fw-la 12._o till_o ver_fw-la 20._o where_o 5._o john_n close_v all_o with_o a_o wish_n for_o christ_n come_v and_o the_o church_n happiness_n as_o epistle_n use_v to_o be_v close_v the_o angel_n do_v first_o confirm_v this_o prophecy_n ver_fw-la 6._o by_o two_o argument_n 1._o these_o say_n be_v faithful_a and_o true_a the_o matter_n be_v sure_a for_o the_o say_n be_v such_o as_o upon_o they_o we_o may_v lay_v weight_n they_o be_v faithful_a such_o a_o commendation_n the_o gospel_n get_v 1_o tim._n 1.15_o and_o it_o be_v frequent_a in_o this_o book_n it_o be_v add_v and_o repeat_v before_o the_o close_a especial_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o former_a vision_n because_o 1._o it_o be_v of_o concernment_n
have_v need_n of_o christ_n blood_n to_o make_v they_o white_a 401_o flee_v to_o christ_n for_o refuge_n the_o best_a way_n to_o escape_v trouble_n ibid._n christ_n intercession_n vid._n intercession_n christ_n sympathy_n with_o believer_n see_v sympathy_n christ_n marriage_n with_o the_o church_n consider_v in_o a_o threefold_a respect_n 691_o 692_o of_o christ_n personal_a reign_n upon_o earth_n and_o the_o different_a opinion_n about_o it_o 710_o 711_o christ_n personal_a reign_n upon_o earth_n refute_v with_o the_o absurdity_n that_o follow_v thereupon_o 714_o 715_o these_o who_o reign_n with_o christ_n on_o earth_n be_v live_a saint_n and_o neither_o martyr_n nor_o saint_n depart_v 716_o 718_o the_o word_n church_n three_o way_n take_v in_o scripture_n why_o the_o revelation_n be_v send_v to_o particular_a church_n why_o to_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o why_o they_o be_v term_v seven_o 20_o 21_o how_o church_n use_v to_o be_v un-churched_n 76_o why_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v particular_o threaten_v with_o this_o ibid._n how_o un-churching_a be_v a_o punishment_n to_o the_o minister_n 77_o if_o there_o can_v be_v any_o particular_a church_n without_o some_o sincere_a professor_n 218_o the_o sad_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n before_o constantine_n time_n and_o the_o flourish_a state_n thereof_o which_o do_v immediate_o follow_v upon_o his_o government_n 374_o 375_o 376_o what_o time_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n these_o wind_n and_o that_o seal_n speak_v of_o chap._n 7._o do_v relate_v to_o 381_o the_o flourish_a state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a evidence_n of_o god_n glory_n in_o the_o world_n and_o one_o of_o the_o great_a ground_n of_o praise_n 397_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n plague_v under_o the_o six_o trumpet_n and_o yet_o she_o repent_v not_o but_o continue_v in_o her_o idolatry_n murder_n etc._n etc._n 450_o 451_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n just_o charge_v with_o these_o 451_o 452_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n 454_o 455_o etc._n etc._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n prove_v to_o be_v a_o idolatrous_a church_n from_o her_o practice_n and_o doctrine_n 456_o 457_o to_o what_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o measure_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o altar_n of_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o to_o be_v refer_v 476_o the_o church_n more_o general_o and_o more_o particular_o consider_v 477_o upon_o this_o that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a church_n under_o antichrist_n tyranny_n it_o will_v neither_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v or_o be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o that_o we_o have_v our_o ordination_n from_o it_o 510_o 511_o a_o national_n church_n do_v well_o suit_n with_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n fall_v and_o the_o gospel_n flourish_v the_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n be_v answer_v 511_o 512_o 513_o 514_o what_o be_v sufficient_a for_o constitute_v a_o person_n a_o member_n of_o a_o true_a church_n or_o how_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v constitute_v 516_o 517_o 518_o the_o church_n first_o war_n with_o the_o dragon_n a_o description_n of_o the_o party_n with_o a_o narrative_a of_o the_o success_n 521_o 522_o 523_o the_o series_n of_o the_o church_n condition_n between_o her_o open_a suffering_n under_o the_o dragon_n and_o heathen_a persecuter_n and_o the_o manifest_a appear_v of_o the_o beast_n or_o antichrist_n 529_o 530_o the_o devil_n design_n against_o the_o church_n the_o mean_v he_o use_v to_o prosecute_v his_o design_n the_o church_n safety_n and_o preservation_n 530_o 531_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o new_a war_n against_o the_o church_n and_o how_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o persecution_n raise_v against_o the_o manchild_n 530_o the_o end_n of_o the_o church_n flee_v from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v thereby_o with_o the_o time_n to_o which_o it_o be_v applicable_a 531_o 532_o 533_o that_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_n visible_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o some_o consideration_n for_o make_v out_o the_o unity_n thereof_o 538_o 539_o ●hat_n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o first_o church_n and_o fountain_n from_o which_o all_o particular_a church_n do_v ●low'●_n and_o some_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n answer_v 540_o 541_o church_n of_o rome_n vid._n rome_n what_o sort_n of_o separation_n be_v called-for_a from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 680_o the_o song_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o church_n the_o part_n of_o the_o song_n the_o ground_n thereof_o the_o party_n who_o exhort_v to_o sing_v and_o the_o person_n who_o be_v exhort_v 689_o 690_o we_o be_v not_o to_o understand_v any_o state_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a by_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n which_o john_n see_v but_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a with_o some_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n answer_v 748_o 749_o 750_o 751_o 752_o the_o comfortless_a ground_n lay_v down_o in_o popery_n for_o ease_v a_o trouble_a conscience_n 446_o conditional_a redemption_n see_v redemption_n the_o lord_n tenderness_n of_o the_o consolation_n of_o his_o people_n and_o whence_o their_o discouragement_n arise_v 469_o the_o way_n of_o god_n covenant_v with_o a_o sinner_n lay_v down_o 234_o several_a sort_n of_o covenant_n 237_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o covenant_n be_v take_v either_o more_o large_o or_o more_o strict_o ibid._n a_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o privilege_n of_o a_o covenant_n which_o flow_v from_o it_o as_o such_o and_o these_o which_o be_v only_o conditional_o promise_v to_o the_o party_n thus_o relate_v ibid._n faith_n and_o work_n in_o what_o respect_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o in_o what_o not_o 238_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n like_o a_o marriage_n covenant_n or_o like_o free_a adoption_n and_o not_o like_o that_o betwixt_o master_n and_o servant_n ib._n covenant_v precee_v justification_n 239_o what_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v by_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o soul_n under_o the_o altar_n 364_o d_o that_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o why_o it_o be_v so_o call_v prove_v 28_o 29_o that_o this_o day_n be_v of_o d●vine_a institution_n prou●n_n and_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n answer_v 30_o 31_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o call_v it_o sunday_n and_o why_o ibid._n how_o this_o day_n be_v to_o be_v sanctify_v ibid._n why_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o first_o beget_v from_o the_o dead_a 5_o spiritual_a deadness_n twofold_a 177_o that_o total_a deadness_n may_v consist_v with_o a_o good_a name_n from_o other_o and_o a_o good_a conceit_n of_o a_o man_n self_n ibid._n christ_n death_n be_v not_o only_o to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n or_o give_v a_o copy_n of_o obedience_n or_o purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n but_o it_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o a_o satisfaction_n 280_o who_o these_o dead_a be_v who_o live_v not_o again_o till_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v expire_v and_o how_o they_o be_v say_v to_o live_v again_o then_o 732_o 733_o how_o hell_n the_o sea_n and_o grave_n give_v up_o their_o dead_a 747_o what_o power_n the_o devil_n have_v over_o man_n hold_v forth_o in_o the_o extent_n of_o it_o from_o scripture_n several_a conclusion_n also_o for_o clear_v it_o 149_o 150_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o devil_n use_v to_o prevail_v in_o tempt_v and_o how_o little_a weight_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v on_o his_o testimony_n 150_o 151_o whether_o the_o devil_n be_v not_o cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n fi●st_v when_o he_o fall_v 738_o what_o it_o be_v to_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n 596_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o moral_a specific_a d●fference_n and_o a_o physical_a clear_v 141_o several_a conclusion_n touch_v discipline_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o lay_v down_o 99_o why_o john_n be_v call_v the_o divine_a 2_o the_o nature_n and_o usefulness_n of_o pure_a doctrine_n with_o the_o evil_n of_o error_n especial_o when_o it_o infect_v these_o who_o be_v minister_n in_o the_o church_n or_o man_n of_o great_a gift_n and_o blameless_a life_n 430_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n do_v most_o native_o lead_v to_o anxiety_n and_o the_o reason_n thereof_o 439_o 440_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o christ_n set_v a_o open_a door_n before_o a_o minister_n how_o he_o may_v know_v it_o and_o what_o way_n he_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o it_o 191_o 192_o 196_o 197_o the_o dragon_n who_o pursue_v the_o woman_n with_o a_o description_n of_o he_o his_o property_n and_o effect_n which_o follow_v upon_o his_o be_v cast_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n 522_o 527_o 528_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o dragon_n make_v war_n with_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o why_o be_v it_o not_o say_v that_o he_o make_v war_n
spiritual_a priesthood_n will_v most_o proper_o agree_v to_o that_o according_a to_o the_o usual_a application_n thereof_o in_o scripture_n these_o redeem_a be_v say_v to_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v to_o show_v their_o humble_a and_o reverend_a way_n of_o go_v about_o this_o work_n of_o praise_n and_o be_v speak_v of_o chap._n 4._o vers_fw-la 10._o last_o they_o be_v furnish_v for_o this_o work_n have_v every_o one_o of_o they_o harp_n and_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n or_o incense_v which_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n this_o show_v their_o fittedness_n and_o readiness_n for_o the_o work_n and_o it_o be_v do_v in_o expression_n borrow_v from_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o yet_o the_o scope_n be_v to_o express_v the_o spiritual_a worship_n that_o be_v give_v to_o god_n under_o the_o gospel_n by_o harp_n be_v understand_v instrument_n for_o praise_n as_o be_v frequent_a in_o the_o psalm_n and_o we_o will_v find_v the_o saint_n in_o their_o cheerful_a condition_n chap._n 15.2_o so_o describe_v this_o show_v a_o warmness_n and_o bendednesse_n of_o heart_n ready_a to_o burst_v out_o in_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o mediator_n and_o to_o make_v melody_n thereby_o within_o themselves_o before_o he_o which_o be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o he_o and_o comfortable_a to_o they_o than_o the_o sweetness_n of_o any_o material_a instrument_n whatsoever_o as_o ephes._n 5.19_o and_o colos._n 3.16_o where_o we_o be_v command_v to_o praise_v with_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n which_o may_v well_o be_v the_o thing_n signify_v by_o these_o harp_n beside_o this_o they_o have_v golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n or_o incense_v incense_n be_v use_v in_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n when_o the_o people_n approach_v to_o offer_v up_o their_o request_n to_o god_n therefore_o we_o have_v the_o word_n psal._n 141.2_o let_v my_o prayer_n be_v set_v forth_o before_o thou_o as_o incense_v vial_n be_v vessel_n wherein_o these_o be_v offer_v and_o so_o vial_n full_a of_o ordour_n will_v signify_v a_o spiritual_a fittedness_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n as_o be_v promise_v zech._n 12.10_o to_o pour_v out_o the_o heart_n to_o god_n in_o prayer_n as_o well_o as_o in_o praise_n they_o be_v two_o notable_a qualification_n of_o believer_n and_o it_o be_v ordinary_a both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o understand_v by_o sacrifice_n and_o offering_n the_o moral_a duty_n of_o praise_n and_o prayer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o to_o the_o last_o part_n this_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v which_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n where_o two_o thing_n be_v answer_v 1._o will_v we_o know_v who_o these_o beast_n and_o elder_n be_v who_o have_v these_o vial_n it_o be_v answer_v they_o be_v saint_n that_o be_v believer_n member_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n and_o this_o confirm_v the_o former_a exposition_n which_o we_o give_v of_o these_o party_n again_o will_v we_o know_v what_o these_o odour_n be_v which_o be_v in_o the_o vial_n the_o text_n say_v they_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v these_o odour_n represent_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n which_o may_v either_o be_v understand_v indefinite_o as_o interpret_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o odour_n in_o the_o general_a and_o so_o all_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n in_o general_n may_v be_v call_v odour_n and_o incense_n or_o we_o may_v take_v it_o with_o a_o special_a relation_n to_o this_o place_n and_o so_o the_o odour_n here_o will_v signify_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n who_o have_v the_o vial_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o thus_o they_o bring_v not_o proper_o the_o prayer_n of_o other_o to_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o absurd_a consider_v that_o these_o officer_n be_v live_v saint_n on_o earth_n but_o they_o bring_v their_o own_o prayer_n even_o as_o by_o harp_n be_v signify_v their_o own_o expression_n of_o praise_n or_o the_o praise_n express_v by_o themselves_o as_o the_o song_n follow_v will_v clear_v this_o therefore_o have_v no_o affinity_n at_o all_o with_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n depart_v which_o be_v utter_o cross_v to_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o place_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v also_o how_o different_a this_o phrase_n be_v from_o that_o which_o be_v attribute_v to_o christ_n chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 3._o where_o he_o alone_o offer_v the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n add_v incense_n thereunto_o their_o song_n follow_v in_o the_o ●_o and_o 10._o vers_fw-la where_o 1._o there_o be_v the_o expression_n of_o their_o praise_n 2._o the_o ground_n or_o reason_n thereof_o their_o song_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o new_a song_n and_o they_o sing_v a_o new_a song_n 1._o because_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o great_a and_o excellent_a that_o no_o former_a expression_n of_o praise_n can_v as_o it_o be_v reach_v the_o same_o for_o which_o cause_n psal._n 40._o david_n say_v he_o have_v put_v a_o new_a song_n in_o his_o mouth_n when_o by_o a_o new_a and_o singular_a mercy_n he_o have_v give_v he_o matter_n thereof_o 2._o it_o be_v new_a as_o contradistinct_a from_o the_o more_o obscure_a expression_n of_o praise_n that_o be_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n now_o the_o office_n of_o the_o mediator_n be_v more_o clear_a and_o he_o have_v make_v himself_o more_o know_v to_o his_o people_n they_o according_o express_v his_o praise_n in_o a_o new_a song_n the_o matter_n express_v be_v thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o take_v the_o book_n and_o to_o open_v the_o seal_v thereof_o that_o be_v in_o sum_n thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v mediator_n and_o to_o execute_v what_o belong_v to_o that_o office_n this_o look_v not_o to_o be_v very_o much_o at_o the_o first_o yet_o there_o can_v be_v more_o say_v for_o if_o we_o will_v consider_v 1._o this_o expression_n put_v he_o beyond_o all_o creature_n for_o none_o of_o they_o be_v find_v worthy_a and_o so_o by_o this_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v beyond_o all_o 2._o this_o expression_n have_v in_o it_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o worthiness_n and_o fitness_n to_o be_v mediator_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o have_v the_o preheminencie_n and_o a_o name_n above_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v which_o be_v the_o great_a confer_v glory_n that_o be_v conceivable_a and_o more_o than_o angel_n and_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o or_o can_v comprehend_v 3._o this_o expression_n imply_v their_o hearty_a assent_n to_o god_n constitute_v of_o he_o in_o that_o office_n and_o their_o exult_a to_o see_v he_o prosper_v and_o glorify_v in_o the_o execute_n of_o the_o same_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n well_o become_v a_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o a_o subject_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o be_v the_o great_a length_n they_o can_v come_v at_o to_o wit_n to_o be_v assenter_n by_o their_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o worth_n to_o god_n advance_v of_o he_o to_o this_o dignity_n the_o ground_n of_o the_o praise_n follow_v in_o three_o step_n the_o last_o be_v always_o more_o particular_a than_o the_o former_a and_o a_o effect_n thereof_o the_o first_o be_v for_o thou_o be_v slay_v that_o be_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o thy_o office_n and_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o father_n will_n thou_o have_v submit_v thyself_o to_o death_n even_o to_o a_o violent_a de●th_n and_o according_o have_v suffer_v the_o same_o and_o so_o thou_o be_v slay_v this_o die_a of_o a_o accurse_a death_n be_v the_o great_a article_n and_o condition_n require_v upon_o the_o mediator_n side_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n upon_o the_o undertake_n and_o undergo_n of_o which_o all_o privilege_n promise_v to_o he_o therein_o be_v ground_v and_o from_o thi●_n all_o the_o work_n of_o redemption_n flow_v therefore_o here_o it_o be_v make_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o worthiness_n to_o administer_v the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n in_o every_o thing_n and_o why_o he_o can_v but_o be_v think_v worthy_a to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o to_o be_v praise_v by_o his_o people_n because_o he_o be_v slay_v and_o so_o have_v perform_v what_o be_v undertake_v by_o he_o the_o second_o ground_n be_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n by_o thy_o blood_n out_o of_o ●very_n kindred_n and_o tongu●_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n in_o this_o there_o be_v a_o very_a sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o work_n of_o redemption_n and_o it_o be_v the_o more_o particular_a application_n of_o the_o former_a ground_n and_o the_o effect_n thereof_o as_o be_v say_v and_o this_o enforce_v the_o former_a reason_n we_o have_v reason_n say_v they_o to_o praise_v thou_o for_o thy_o death_n for_o by_o it_o we_o that_o be_v lose_v and_o sell_v
under_o sin_n be_v redeem_v unto_o god_n etc._n etc._n to_o consider_v the_o word_n more_o particular_o we_o must_v follow_v the_o similitude_n of_o redemption_n as_o it_o be_v use_v among_o man_n and_o in_o this_o case_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o help_v we_o to_o understand_v somewhat_o of_o this_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o here_o be_v imply_v 1._o that_o god_n have_v a_o peculiar_a right_n to_o these_o that_o praise_n in_o this_o song_n before_o ever_o they_o come_v to_o be_v sell_v or_o mortgage_v so_o to_o redeem_v a_o thing_n among_o man_n suppon_v a_o man_n once_o to_o have_v have_v a_o right_a to_o such_o a_o thing_n here_o we_o take_v god_n right_a to_o these_o redeem_v not_o only_o to_o be_v that_o interest_n which_o he_o have_v in_o they_o by_o creation_n for_o that_o be_v common_a but_o that_o which_o he_o have_v from_o eternity_n by_o his_o purpose_n and_o decree_n of_o election_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o elect_n be_v call_v his_o singular_o and_o job._n 17._o vers_fw-la 6._o thou_o they_o be_v and_o thou_o give_v they_o to_o i_o etc._n etc._n where_o these_o that_o be_v elect_v and_o give_v to_o christ_n be_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n say_v to_o be_v god_n and_o this_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o phrase_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n for_o it_o supponeth_n that_o by_o christ_n purchase_n as_o it_o be_v access_n be_v make_v for_o they_o again_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n possession_n according_a to_o his_o former_a right_n 2._o here_o be_v employ_v that_o even_o these_o to_o who_o god_n have_v this_o peculiar_a right_n be_v before_o this_o redemption_n someway_o mortgage_v or_o as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v wodset_n and_o yet_o so_o as_o the_o former_a right_n be_v not_o full_o dissolve_v for_o if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v some_o morgage_a and_o alienation_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o redemption_n and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o total_a dissolution_n of_o the_o former_a right_n there_o have_v be_v no_o access_n to_o redeem_v this_o morgage_a in_o scripture_n be_v clear_o express_v to_o be_v that_o spiritual_a bondage_n under_o the_o law_n wrath_n and_o curse_v of_o god_n whereby_o even_o the_o elect_a by_o their_o sin_n have_v enthral_v themselves_o and_o because_o of_o that_o be_v lie_v under_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n till_o he_o be_v satisfy_v and_o his_o honour_n repare_v which_o suffer_v by_o their_o sin_n this_o be_v large_o express_v rom._n 3._o ephes._n 2._o and_o gal._n 3._o beside_o many_o other_o place_n the_o tie_n which_o notwithstanding_o stand_v betwixt_o the_o lord_n and_o these_o be_v that_o purpose_n of_o election_n for_o even_o then_o in_o that_o respect_n they_o be_v his_o as_o be_v say_v for_o election_n be_v found_v on_o nothing_o in_o the_o creature_n but_o on_o god_n free_a will_n purpose_n and_o good_a pleasure_n there_o can_v nothing_o in_o the_o creature_n dissolve_v the_o same_o 3._o here_o be_v employ_v that_o before_o these_o elect_n can_v be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n there_o must_v be_v a_o price_n lay_v down_o as_o it_o be_v in_o compensation_n for_o the_o same_o this_o be_v clear_o employ_v in_o the_o word_n redemption_n which_o import_v some_o equivalent_a satisfaction_n give_v to_o the_o party_n offend_v or_o to_o the_o party_n for_o who_o behoove_v such_o person_n be_v just_o mortgage_v and_o without_o who_o prejudice_n they_o can_v not_o be_v set_v free_a except_o a_o equivalent_a price_n be_v pay_v and_o this_o be_v call_v redemption_n now_o the_o party_n offend_v for_o the_o vindication_n of_o who_o honour_n the_o elect_a for_o a_o time_n be_v imprison_v and_o put_v under_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o in_o reason_n ere_o they_o can_v be_v free_v there_o must_v be_v some_o equivalent_a price_n for_o his_o satisfaction_n which_o may_v glorify_v he_o and_o vindicate_v his_o honour_n as_o much_o as_o the_o keep_n of_o they_o in_o prison_n or_o under_o the_o former_a mortgage_n and_o this_o be_v call_v satisfaction_n or_o redemption_n 4._o the_o scope_n of_o this_o redemption_n be_v express_v in_o that_o word_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n that_o be_v that_o the_o elect_n may_v be_v admit_v unto_o god_n friendship_n and_o favour_n and_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o to_o the_o enjoy_n of_o the_o title_n that_o stand_v betwixt_o he_o and_o they_o as_o free_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o have_v sin_n or_o have_v never_o be_v under_o such_o a_o mortgage_n 5._o they_o express_v who_o this_o redeemer_n be_v thou_o h●st_v redeem_v we_o o_o bless_v thou_o this_o can_v indeed_o but_o affect_v thou_o the_o lamb_n thou_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o have_v eye_n like_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n etc._n etc._n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o redeemer_n because_o when_o the_o elect_a have_v nothing_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o captivity_n and_o mortgage_n which_o they_o have_v bring_v upon_o themselves_o and_o when_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o law_n and_o curse_n to_o say_v no_o more_o do_v call_v for_o a_o satisfaction_n and_o price_n before_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v to_o freedom_n then_o he_o undertake_v and_o be_v content_a to_o pay_v what_o they_o be_v due_a either_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n or_o in_o the_o equivalent_a that_o so_o they_o who_o be_v as_o a_o mortgage_v possession_n detain_v from_o the_o right_a owner_n may_v be_v restore_v free_o to_o he_o again_o 6._o the_o price_n by_o which_o he_o redeem_v they_o be_v mention_v thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o by_o thy_o blood_n it_o be_v wonderful_a that_o he_o who_o be_v such_o a_o person_n shall_v be_v the_o redeemer_n but_o o_o how_o wonderful_a that_o he_o shall_v perform_v this_o redemption_n by_o lay_v down_o such_o a_o price_n as_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o in_o this_o we_o may_v see_v first_o that_o see_v the_o threaten_n against_o sin_n include_v death_n that_o day_n thou_o eat_v thou_o shall_v die_v so_o the_o redeemer_n condescend_v to_o undergo_v death_n for_o satisfy_v that_o second_o when_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o by_o thy_o blood_n there_o be_v import_v a_o testimony_n of_o the_o singularity_n of_o his_o worth_n and_o also_o of_o his_o love_n for_o no_o blood_n of_o goat_n nay_o nor_o of_o man_n nor_o of_o mere_a creature_n can_v make_v this_o redemption_n for_o no_o man_n can_v redeem_v his_o brother_n psal._n 49._o so_o precious_a be_v the_o redemption_n of_o soul_n that_o it_o cease_v for_o ever_o to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o create_a redeemer_n yet_o than_o thou_o condescend_v to_o do_v it_o even_o with_o thy_o blood_n which_o act._n 20.28_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o god_n three_o this_o redeem_n by_o his_o blood_n do_v express_v his_o death_n to_o be_v purposely_o and_o formal_o lay_v down_o by_o he_o and_o accept_v of_o by_o god_n as_o a_o price_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o the_o room_n of_o these_o elect_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o their_o redemption_n otherwise_o the_o whole_a strain_n of_o this_o scripture_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n except_o christ_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n and_o his_o blood_n and_o suffering_n to_o be_v the_o price_n which_o be_v lay_v down_o as_o a_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n justice_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o elect_a sinner_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v be_v set_v free_a and_o christ_n blood_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o satisfaction_n equivalent_a before_o justice_n because_o by_o his_o undertake_n that_o debt_n and_o submit_v to_o pay_v the_o same_o and_o god_n actual_a exact_v it_o of_o he_o the_o holiness_n and_o spotless_a justice_n of_o god_n be_v more_o glorious_o manifest_v than_o if_o these_o themselves_o have_v be_v keep_v still_o in_o the_o prison_n who_o be_v yet_o never_o able_a to_o have_v pay_v one_o farthing_n whereas_o now_o the_o redeemer_n have_v pay_v to_o the_o uttermost_a 7._o there_o be_v here_o the_o object_n of_o this_o redemption_n to_o wit_n we_o thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o and_o these_o be_v to_o say_v so_o two_o way_n qualify_v 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o extent_n of_o this_o object_n it_o be_v not_o some_o of_o one_o family_n city_n nation_n or_o kindred_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v extend_v to_o every_o kindred_n tongue_n people_n and_o nation_n and_o this_o be_v seem_v be_v do_v to_o show_v the_o universality_n to_o say_v so_o and_o extent_n of_o christ_n church_n under_o the_o gospel_n in_o opposition_n to_o what_o it_o be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o former_o now_o say_v they_o the_o church_n be_v not_o include_v within_o one_o family_n or_o nation_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v spread_v the_o elect_n be_v gathered-in_a out_o